Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n bishop_n rome_n succession_n 9,910 5 9.8153 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A34969 Exomologesis, or, A faithfull narration of the occaision and motives of the conversion unto Catholick unity of Hugh-Paulin de Cressy, lately Deane of Laghlin &c. in Ireland and Prebend of Windsore in England now a second time printed with additions and explications by the same author who now calls himself B. Serenus Cressy, religious priest of the holy order of S. Benedict in the convent of S. Gregory in Doway. Cressy, Serenus, 1605-1674.; Pearson, John, 1613-1686.; Falkland, Lucius Cary, Viscount, 1610?-1643. Discourse of infallibility. 1653 (1653) Wing C6895; ESTC R29283 288,178 694

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

whether_o that_o authority_n which_o be_v indeed_o supreme_a be_v not_o unappealable_a from_o and_o necessary_o to_o be_v submit_v to_o by_o all_o particular_a subordinate_a person_n to_o say_v such_o person_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o be_v guide_n be_v to_o contradict_v express_a scripture_n and_o to_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v a_o subordination_n of_o authority_n without_o one_o that_o be_v supreme_a or_o that_o that_o which_o be_v indeed_o supreme_a may_v by_o particular_n person_n or_o church_n be_v oppose_v or_o so_o much_o as_o appeal_v from_o be_v to_o contradict_v not_o only_o what_o be_v assume_v but_o evident_a reason_n and_o all_o order_n 3._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o no_o church_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o guide_n in_o fundamental_n but_o only_o a_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n as_o greek_a roman_a abyssine_n etc._n etc._n for_o otherwise_o no_o man_n can_v possible_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o only_o by_o a_o pre-examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o by_o the_o true_a doctrine_n to_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o a_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v as_o we_o profess_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o that_o this_o catholic_a church_n be_v visible_a and_o easy_o to_o be_v design_v plain_o distinquishable_a from_o new_a sect_n and_o innovate_a congregation_n and_o that_o this_o body_n representative_o unite_v be_v the_o supreme_a authority_n on_o earth_n and_o that_o every_o particular_a church_n or_o member_n of_o this_o catholic_a church_n as_o such_o be_v a_o sufficient_a guide_n to_o those_o that_o live_v in_o her_o communion_n as_o concern_v his_o phrase_n a_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n i_o grant_v that_o god_n have_v not_o apparent_o oblige_v himself_o to_o confine_v his_o promise_n to_o any_o particular_a dioecose_v province_n or_o nation_n no_o not_o perhaps_o even_o to_o rome_n itself_o only_a this_o may_v certain_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n a_o visible_a church_n teach_v all_o substantial_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n guide_v by_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pastor_n under_o one_o visible_a head_n which_o visible_a head_n have_v hitherto_o for_o above_o sixteen_o century_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o be_v a_o fair_a presumption_n that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o to_o christ_n second_o come_v for_o i_o know_v nothing_o but_o a_o general_a earthquake_n there_o and_o swallow_v up_o of_o that_o place_n that_o be_v likely_a to_o hinder_v such_o a_o succession_n since_o it_o have_v already_o abide_v all_o variety_n of_o opposition_n and_o tempest_n when_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a and_o infernal_a empire_n seek_v to_o extinguish_v it_o and_o when_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n seek_v to_o undermine_v it_o but_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o of_o this_o when_o i_o come_v to_o the_o last_o conclusion_n concern_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o in_o the_o four_o place_n to_o his_o first_o proof_n that_o no_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n can_v be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n because_o if_o so_o than_o she_o shall_v be_v infallible_a in_o non-fundamentalls_a also_o i_o answer_v that_o even_o by_o mr._n chillingworth_n own_o confession_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o if_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o preserve_v his_o church_n from_o all_o error_n in_o fundamental_n that_o therefore_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o promise_n she_o shall_v be_v exempt_v from_o all_o error_n whatsoever_o and_o the_o reason_n give_v by_o mr._n chillingworth_n be_v worth_a the_o mark_v the_o church_n say_v he_o may_v err_v and_o yet_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n not_o prevail_v against_o she_o for_o see_v you_o catholic_n do_v and_o must_v grant_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v hold_v some_o error_n and_o yet_o be_v still_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n why_o may_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n bold_a the_o same_o error_n and_o yet_o remain_v the_o universal_a church_n unless_o every_o the_o least_o error_n be_v one_o of_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n 5._o and_o indeed_o many_o catholic_a writer_n there_o be_v who_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n with_o mr._n chillingworth_n extend_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n assistance_n to_o the_o church_n not_o to_o all_o inconsiderable_a circumstantial_a doctrine_n but_o substantial_a and_o traditionary_a only_o and_o for_o a_o further_a proof_n we_o may_v add_v that_o there_o be_v some_o father_n of_o great_a antiquity_n and_o authority_n who_o hold_v whether_o just_o and_o true_o or_o no_o i_o debate_v not_o but_o they_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v real_a difference_n between_o the_o four_o evangelist_n in_o some_o circumstance_n of_o no_o considerable_a moment_n relate_v by_o they_o and_o by_o consequence_n there_o must_v of_o necessity_n in_o their_o opinion_n be_v a_o error_n such_o as_o it_o be_v in_o some_o one_o of_o they_o at_o lest_o the_o which_o inconsiderable_a difference_n whether_o real_a or_o imaginary_a there_o be_v a_o exact_a demonstrable_a agreement_n among_o they_o all_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n do_v rather_o in_o s._n chrysostom_n judgement_n in_o mat._n hom._n 1_o establish_v then_o invalidate_n or_o any_o way_n prejudice_v the_o divine_a infallibility_n of_o their_o write_n since_o thereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a say_v he_o that_o they_o do_v not_o compose_v they_o by_o consent_n and_o conspiracy_n for_o than_o they_o will_v have_v be_v scrupulous_o punctual_a in_o all_o even_o the_o small_a circumstance_n but_o in_o the_o ingenuous_a simplicity_n and_o sincerity_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o like_a manner_n s._n hierome_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o his_o time_n some_o learned_a catholic_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n quote_v some_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o septuagint_n mere_o out_o of_o their_o memory_n not_o look_v into_o the_o book_n themselves_o and_o that_o by_o that_o mean_v their_o memory_n fail_v their_o quotation_n be_v not_o exact_o true_a yet_o notwithstanding_o those_o father_n be_v far_o from_o question_v the_o authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o any_o one_o of_o the_o evangelist_n as_o concern_v any_o substantial_a doctrine_n contain_v in_o any_o of_o their_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n so_o likewise_o in_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n there_o be_v not_o only_a difference_n of_o sense_n from_o original_n hebrew_n or_o greek_a now_o extant_a not_o only_o great_a and_o uncertain_a variety_n of_o read_v in_o the_o ancient_a latin_a copy_n but_o likewise_o as_o the_o protestant_n brag_v very_o great_a diversity_n between_o the_o impression_n publish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n sixtus_n quintus_fw-la and_o clemens_n octavus_n since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v mistake_v for_o though_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la have_v design_v a_o impression_n and_o prepare_v a_o bull_n for_o the_o authorise_a of_o it_o yet_o god_n take_v he_o away_o before_o he_o effect_v his_o intent_n thereby_o as_o it_o be_v signify_v that_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o take_v away_o from_o heretic_n all_o seem_a advantage_n against_o his_o church_n but_o though_o this_o have_v be_v as_o the_o protestant_n imagine_v sure_o a_o more_o correct_v reimpression_n do_v not_o imply_v that_o the_o church_n want_v the_o true_a scripture_n since_o none_o of_o such_o difference_n be_v of_o such_o considerable_a moment_n as_o to_o cause_v any_o uncertainty_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n for_o i_o conceive_v it_o be_v never_o hear_v that_o any_o error_n be_v ground_v mere_o upon_o a_o various_a read_n of_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o to_o proceed_v certain_a it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v much_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o ancient_a italica_n and_o other_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o this_o of_o s._n hierome_n as_o likewise_o yet_o great_a between_o the_o septuagint_n and_o the_o hebrew_n and_o yet_o neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n refuse_v to_o quote_v some_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o septuagint_n wherein_o the_o translation_n be_v manifest_o faulty_a however_o in_o a_o matter_n inconsiderable_a neither_o will_v any_o catholic_a affirm_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n assistance_n do_v fail_v the_o ancient_a church_n although_o it_o only_o make_v use_n of_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n very_o imperfect_a if_o compare_v with_o s._n hieromes_n no_o not_o though_o upon_o such_o difference_n of_o read_v it_o be_v possible_a to_o ground_n doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v circumstantial_o erroneous_a it_o be_v true_a such_o doctrine_n will_v be_v of_o no_o considerable_a moment_n but_o however_o they_o may_v be_v erroneous_a yet_o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o christ_n
least_o pretence_n of_o any_o charge_n of_o sedition_n or_o treason_n but_o for_o this_o only_a crime_n of_o be_v of_o that_o heavenly_a vocation_n to_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v call_v and_o the_o sacred_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n have_v exalt_v they_o and_o for_o a_o conscionable_a discharge_n of_o that_o call_n they_o be_v arraign_v condemn_v drag_v to_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n there_o ignominious_o hang_v among_o thief_n and_o murderer_n and_o their_o half-living_a body_n most_o inhumane_o quarter_v and_o expose_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o weather_n 2._o this_o crime_n be_v the_o more_o inexcusable_a because_o commit_v by_o englishman_n who_o though_o violent_a enough_o in_o their_o passion_n when_o it_o be_v provoke_v yet_o be_v apt_a in_o a_o short_a time_n to_o relent_v and_o by_o english_a protestant_n a_o sect_n pretend_v above_o ordinary_a to_o moderation_n and_o clemency_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o calvinisticall_a spirit_n have_v be_v work_v in_o that_o state_n and_o government_n ever_o since_o the_o begin_n of_o q._n elizabeth_n reign_n for_o the_o calvinist_n be_v the_o councillor_n that_o first_o suggest_v those_o cruelty_n which_o their_o descendants_n have_v since_o eager_o pursue_v and_o act_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o other_o till_o their_o so_o long_o project_v design_n succeed_v they_o may_v have_v the_o pleasure_n to_o glut_v themselves_o with_o christian_a blood_n even_o to_o vomit_v as_o they_o have_v of_o late_o do_v 3._o now_o that_o this_o be_v no_o false_a character_n of_o that_o calvinisticall_a spirit_n beside_o many_o woeful_a experience_n in_o other_o country_n our_o great_a presbyterian_a contriver_n and_o manager_n of_o the_o late_a war_n have_v give_v several_a testimony_n irrefragable_a who_o whensoever_o they_o be_v press_v with_o want_n of_o treasure_n know_v the_o complexion_n and_o temper_n of_o their_o own_o faction_n in_o london_n how_o delightful_a a_o spectacle_n of_o blood_n will_v be_v have_v no_o ready_a way_n to_o extort_v supply_n of_o money_n from_o they_o then_o by_o feast_v and_o regal_v they_o with_o the_o cruel_a execution_n of_o a_o catholic_a priest_n or_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o their_o own_o archbishop_n or_o of_o some_o other_o considerable_a royaltist_n i_o beseech_v almighty_a god_n that_o when_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o he_o will_v make_v inquisition_n for_o blood_n he_o will_v sever_v the_o innocent_a from_o the_o guilty_a and_o not_o impute_v to_o the_o whole_a nation_n the_o cruelty_n of_o that_o one_o bloody_a faction_n there_o chap._n vi_o the_o author_n sadness_n for_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o his_o country_n what_o remedy_n and_o lenitive_n he_o find_v for_o this_o sorrow_n 1._o a_o sad_a meditation_n on_o such_o argument_n as_o these_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o my_o thought_n at_o my_o departure_n out_o of_o england_n and_o a_o good_a while_n after_o during_o my_o first_o abode_n in_o france_n and_o though_o god_n be_v thanked●_n i_o can_v not_o accuse_v myself_o of_o have_v contribute_v any_o thing_n direct_o or_o otherwise_o than_o all_o other_o sinner_n before_o almighty_a god_n do_v to_o the_o present_a desolation_n of_o my_o poor_a belove_a country_n and_o there_o ought_v to_o have_v content_v myself_o with_o a_o entire_a resignation_n of_o the_o whole_a matter_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o most_o merciful_a however_o infinite_o provoke_v god_n pray_v for_o the_o peace_n of_o that_o jerusalem_n without_o unnecessary_a afflict_v my_o own_o soul_n yet_o i_o willing_o deceive_v myself_o into_o a_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n of_o grieve_v with_o this_o false_a belief_n that_o in_o such_o circumstance_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o grieve_v be_v to_o renounce_v not_o only_a humanity_n but_o likewise_o that_o duty_n which_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n oblige_v i_o to_o perform_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o church_n 2._o but_o time_n and_o better_a instruction_n from_o spiritual_a person_n especial_o catholic_n who_o counsel_v in_o matter_n of_o practice_n in_o such_o case_n i_o think_v it_o not_o unlawful_a to_o hearken_v to_o do_v at_o length_n reduce_v my_o mind_n into_o a_o more_o calm_a temper_n towards_o the_o tranquillity_n i_o be_v much_o advance_v by_o a_o obstinate_a resolution_n not_o only_o not_o to_o be_v inquisitive_a after_o news_n good_a or_o bad_a but_o to_o avoid_v those_o conversation_n where_o i_o may_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o such_o a_o mortification_n and_o withal_o by_o employ_v my_o time_n and_o thought_n in_o that_o charge_n which_o i_o have_v undertake_v and_o in_o my_o own_o private_a study_n chap._n vii_o a_o scruple_n suggest_v to_o my_o mind_n viz._n to_o the_o communion_n of_o what_o church_n i_o shall_v adhere_v upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v fail_v 1._o not_o long_o after_o this_o there_o be_v i_o know_v not_o how_o suggest_v to_o my_o understanding_n a_o thought_n which_o i_o can_v not_o at_o pleasure_n silence_n and_o which_o interrupt_v much_o my_o extreme_a eagerness_n of_o read_v it_o be_v this_o a_o supposition_n be_v make_v that_o it_o shall_v please_v almighty_a god_n to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o the_o church_n and_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o england_n to_o what_o church_n communion_n i_o shall_v then_o adjoyne_v myself_o 2._o it_o be_v not_o any_o reason_n i_o have_v to_o despair_v of_o the_o king_n condition_n that_o occasion_v such_o a_o inquiry_n for_o at_o this_o time_n he_o be_v in_o a_o state_n to_o dispute_v upon_o even_a term_n the_o victory_n with_o his_o enemy_n nor_o any_o jealousy_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o english_a religion_n but_o know_v that_o the_o english_a church_n consider_v as_o distinct_a not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a but_o from_o all_o other_o sect_n in_o separation_n likewise_o from_o it_o be_v not_o nor_o ever_o pretend_v to_o be_v either_o indefectible_a or_o infallible_a nay_o more_o consider_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n in_o england_n depend_v absolute_o upon_o the_o firmness_n or_o weakness_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n there_o by_o who_o absolute_a power_n only_o and_o according_a to_o who_o interest_n it_o be_v frame_v at_o first_o and_o perceive_v but_o too_o well_o that_o for_o many_o year_n there_o have_v be_v a_o powerful_a malicious_a contrive_v faction_n of_o calvinist_n equal_o enemy_n to_o monarchy_n and_o episcopal_a government_n as_o they_o have_v give_v proof_n to_o the_o full_a and_o which_o have_v intrude_v themselves_o and_o be_v general_o incorporate_v both_o into_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n university_n chief_a bourgeosy_n and_o place_n of_o judicature_n who_o design_n receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n it_o have_v be_v to_o omit_v no_o occasion_n to_o ruin_v both_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a state_n whereto_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o scotland_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o give_v their_o brotherly_a assistance_n last_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o main_a thing_n and_o to_o i_o the_o most_o considerable_a advantage_n which_o the_o english_a church_n have_v above_o all_o other_o pretend_v to_o a_o reformation_n namely_o a_o succession_n and_o authority_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a order_n receive_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v never_o confident_o and_o general_o teach_v in_o england_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n and_o by_o consequence_n take_v no_o firm_a root_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o english_a subject_n upon_o which_o ground_n i_o easy_o foresee_v that_o though_o perhaps_o many_o will_v adventure_v far_o to_o support_v the_o real_a authority_n yet_o if_o ever_o the_o title_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o right_n of_o the_o king_n there_o will_v but_o very_o few_o appear_v that_o will_v hazard_v their_o fortune_n or_o life_n for_o that_o which_o though_o they_o prefer_v infinite_o before_o the_o presbyterian_a tyranny_n yet_o they_o have_v never_o be_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a condition_n of_o a_o church_n yea_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o have_v see_v both_o king_n and_o clergy_n and_o general_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n look_v upon_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n church_n as_o brethren_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n in_o substantial_o send_v bishop_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n to_o sit_v with_o they_o in_o their_o synod_n maintain_v their_o quarrel_n commend_v their_o principal_a author_n harbour_v relieve_v and_o prefer_v their_o exile_n in_o a_o word_n upon_o the_o title_n of_o brotherhood_n assist_v they_o with_o treasure_n and_o force_n in_o their_o rebellion_n 3._o upon_o such_o ground_n as_o these_o consider_v the_o unsure_a foundation_n of_o the_o english_a church_n i_o think_v it_o not_o unreasonable_a to_o spend_v some_o thought_n upon_o that_o enquiry_n viz._n to_o what_o church_n communion_n i_o shall_v adjoyne_v myself_o upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o english_a church_n shall_v come_v to_o sail_v i_o think_v myself_o the_o rather_o oblige_v to_o pursue_v
practice_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o and_o apparent_o come_v short_a of_o the_o english_a church_n be_v indeed_o of_o so_o high_a a_o nature_n as_o to_o dishearten_v i_o from_o embrace_v their_o communion_n any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o allow_v they_o my_o charity_n in_o not_o condemn_v they_o which_o i_o also_o afford_v even_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o 2._o now_o among_o the_o difference_n where_o in_o all_o other_o sect_n pretend_v to_o a_o reformation_n be_v distinguishable_a from_o the_o english_a as_o want_v certain_a privilege_n and_o commendable_a quality_n which_o she_o enjoy_v some_o i_o find_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o those_o sect_n especial_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n other_o to_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o each_o concern_v these_o latter_a i_o find_v it_o to_o little_a purpose_n to_o spend_v much_o time_n in_o examine_v they_o because_o the_o former_a common_a one_o do_v more_o than_o sufficient_o dishearten_v i_o from_o adjoin_v myself_o to_o their_o communion_n and_o those_o be_v especial_o these_o five_o viz._n 1._o their_o ground_v their_o belief_n both_o of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o not_o upon_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n which_o as_o they_o pretend_v assure_v they_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o that_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o collect_v from_o they_o be_v the_o true_a undoubted_a sense_n of_o they_o 2._o their_o apparent_a want_n of_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o teacher_n join_v with_o a_o unsufferable_a presumption_n in_o condemn_v of_o tyranny_n that_o government_n of_o bishop_n which_o have_v be_v apparent_o settle_v in_o the_o universal_a church_n without_o contradiction_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n 3._o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n 4._o their_o profess_a hatred_n of_o peace_n and_o reunion_n with_o the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o the_o prodigious_a personal_a quality_n of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n which_o show_v they_o to_o be_v person_n extreme_o unfit_a to_o be_v rely_v upon_o or_o acknowledge_v for_o apostle_n and_o reformer_n 3._o concern_v the_o first_o common_a difference_n namely_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n ground_v their_o belief_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o their_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o general_o of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n not_o upon_o the_o authority_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o much_o as_o upon_o a_o private_a spirit_n testimony_n or_o suggestion_n pretend_v to_o be_v infuse_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o which_o they_o take_v upon_o themselves_o to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n of_o their_o expression_n of_o several_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o their_o persuasion_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o divine_a write_n what_o little_a satisfaction_n i_o find_v in_o this_o main_a foundation_n of_o their_o religion_n i_o shall_v reserve_v to_o demonstrate_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o desire_v that_o to_o be_v mistake_v when_o i_o call_v this_o one_o of_o the_o difference_n and_o disadvantage_n which_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n etc._n etc._n have_v in_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o english_a church_n for_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o by_o rational_a consequence_n from_o the_o ground_n declare_v of_o the_o english_a church_n the_o former_a position_n will_v evident_o follow_v notwithstanding_o she_o have_v be_v more_o moderate_a and_o wary_a then_o public_o to_o pretend_v to_o such_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o by_o consequence_n have_v leave_v a_o latitude_n and_o liberty_n for_o they_o in_o her_o communion_n to_o renounce_v it_o as_o many_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a among_o they_o have_v do_v chap._n x._o apparent_a want_n yea_o renounce_v of_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o teacher_n among_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n i._o a_o second_o thing_n wherein_o the_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n agree_v to_o disagree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v their_o want_n of_o bishop_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o a_o lawful_o ordain_v clergy_n this_o be_v a_o inconvenience_n so_o much_o the_o more_o hard_a to_o be_v digest_v by_o i_o and_o which_o deserve_v neither_o excuse_n nor_o commiseration_n because_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o want_n of_o bishop_n at_o their_o first_o pretend_a reformation_n they_o come_v to_o that_o shamelessness_n as_o to_o seek_v to_o palliate_v this_o defect_n by_o a_o desperate_a condemn_v of_o the_o order_n itself_o as_o a_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n against_o the_o express_a order_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o though_o they_o especial_o the_o french_a calvinist_n may_v afterward_o have_v in_o some_o sort_n remedy_v this_o defect_n by_o receive_v a_o clergy_n by_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o english_a bishop_n whereto_o they_o have_v be_v earnest_o follicit_v as_o namely_o by_o bishop_n morton_n notwithstanding_o they_o utter_o persist_v in_o the_o utter_a refusal_n of_o suffer_v this_o important_a disadvantage_n to_o be_v cure_v which_o perverse_a spirit_n of_o they_o arnobius_n cont_n gen._n lib._n 6._o elegant_o describe_v in_o these_o word_n quod_fw-la semel_fw-la sine_fw-la ratione_fw-la fecistis_fw-la ne_fw-la videamini_fw-la aliquando_fw-la nesciisse_fw-la defenditis_fw-la that_o be_v that_o thing_n which_o you_o once_o unreasonable_o do_v to_o avoid_v the_o imputation_n of_o have_v be_v ignorant_a you_o still_o maintain_v yea_o to_o that_o ridiculous_a impudence_n have_v they_o arrive_v in_o scotland_n not_o many_o year_n since_o as_o to_o admit_v one_o to_o public_a penance_n in_o the_o church_n only_o for_o have_v be_v a_o protestant_a bishop_n 2._o i_o can_v forbear_v to_o give_v a_o taste_n of_o luther_n spirit_n with_o reference_n to_o this_o subject_n lively_o represent_v in_o a_o bull_n by_o he_o publish_v to_o this_o tenor_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la m._n d._n xxiii_o 102._o nunc_fw-la attendite_fw-la vos_fw-la episcopi_fw-la imò_fw-la larvae_fw-la diaboli_fw-la doctor_n lutherus_n vult_fw-la vobis_fw-la bullam_fw-la &_o reformationem_fw-la legere_fw-la quae_fw-la vobis_fw-la non_fw-la bene_fw-la sonabit_fw-la doctoris_fw-la lutheri_fw-la bulla_n &_o reformatio_fw-la quicumque_fw-la opem_fw-la ferunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v now_o be_v attentive_a o_o you_o bishop_n or_o rather_o disguise_n of_o the_o devil_n doctor_n luther_n will_v read_v to_o you_o a_o bull_n which_o will_v not_o sound_v pleas_o unto_o you_o the_o bull_n and_o reformation_n of_o doctor_n luther_n whosoever_o bring_v assistance_n spend_v body_n life_n and_o honour_n to_o the_o end_n that_o bishopric_n may_v be_v waste_v and_o the_o government_n of_o bishop_n extinguish_v such_o be_v the_o belove_a child_n of_o god_n and_o true_a christian_n observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o devil_n or_o if_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v thus_o much_o let_v they_o at_o least_o condemn_v and_o avoid_v that_o government_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a whosoever_o maintain_v the_o government_n of_o bishop_n and_o obey_v they_o voluntary_o such_o be_v tho_o very_a minister_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o resist_v the_o ordinance_n and_o law_n of_o god_n hitherto_o be_v luther_n bull._n and_o i_o desire_v that_o any_o reasonable_a christian_n will_v confess_v whether_o he_o can_v choose_v but_o believe_v that_o the_o very_a same_o who_o luther_n himself_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v his_o counsellor_n and_o persuader_n to_o leave_v mass_n be_v his_o secretary_n likewise_o to_o write_v this_o bull_n and_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o think_v that_o this_o be_v only_o one_o of_o luther_n frantic_a extravagancy_n the_o horrible_a effect_n will_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a which_o be_v a_o fearful_a insurrection_n and_o rebellion_n of_o a_o world_n of_o country_n people_n combine_v by_o oath_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o several_a ecclesiastical_a prince_n in_o germany_n who_o be_v content_a in_o that_o cause_n to_o stand_v to_o luther_n judgement_n who_o when_o he_o perceive_v they_o be_v unfurnished_v of_o arm_n and_o unlikely_a to_o prosper_v in_o their_o design_n lest_o their_o rebellion_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v to_o he_o be_v content_a to_o exhort_v they_o to_o obedience_n 3._o calvin_n and_o beza_n etc._n etc._n though_o more_o subtle_a yet_o be_v not_o less_o malicious_a against_o episcopacy_n as_o appear_v in_o several_a of_o their_o treatise_n and_o epistle_n yea_o calvin_n ascend_v to_o that_o height_n of_o arrogance_n as_o to_o profess_v that_o that_o order_n and_o discipline_n which_o he_o have_v forge_v in_o geneva_n and_o whereof_o not_o one_o single_a pattern_n can_v be_v give_v since_o christ_n time_n be_v not_o only_o justifiable_a but_o necessary_o oblige_v all_o christian_n to_o conform_v unto_o 4._o whether_o it_o may_v in_o some_o
measure_n be_v attribute_v to_o my_o education_n in_o a_o church_n which_o challenge_v to_o itself_o a_o privilege_n beyond_o all_o other_o sect_n from_o a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n or_o to_o the_o evidence_n of_o reason_n and_o authority_n which_o convince_v i_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o succession_n however_o it_o come_v i_o find_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o episcopacy_n be_v a_o government_n condemnable_a or_o that_o a_o legitimate_a succession_n of_o holy_a order_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o church_n or_o last_o that_o the_o supereminence_n of_o episcopacy_n above_o priesthood_n the_o appropriate_a thereto_o of_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n confirmation_n and_o give_v suffrage_n in_o counsel_n be_v a_o usurpation_n crepe_v into_o the_o church_n immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o contrary_a to_o their_o intention_n consider_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v extreme_o and_o punctual_o scrupulous_a in_o maintain_v the_o very_a phrase_n of_o traditionary_a doctrine_n and_o form_n of_o customapractise_n in_o so_o much_o as_o when_o the_o least_o innovation_n in_o either_o be_v discover_v all_o man_n conspire_v to_o condemn_v the_o innovatour_n witness_v the_o controversy_n about_o easter_n rebaptization_n of_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o imaginable_a think_v i_o that_o those_o first_o bishop_n who_o even_o by_o their_o officer_n be_v more_o peculiarly_a canditati_fw-la martyrii_fw-la shall_v so_o sudden_o degenerate_a from_o the_o apostolical_a spirit_n of_o humility_n as_o universal_o to_o conspire_v to_o set_v up_o that_o pretend_a tyranny_n over_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o suppose_v that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o such_o dire_a persecution_n they_o have_v the_o will_n and_o leisure_n to_o design_n such_o ambitious_a project_n be_v it_o credible_a that_o the_o whole_a ardour_n of_o b●esbyters_n will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o their_o privilege_n and_o officer_n so_o very_o late_o bequeath_v they_o by_o christ_n and_o confer_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o this_o universal_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o not_o one_o single_a presbyter_n appear_v that_o shall_v protest_v against_o such_o a_o usurpation_n certain_o it_o be_v much_o more_o probable_a that_o luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v either_o deceiver_n or_o deceive_v then_o that_o all_o primitive_a bishop_n be_v tyrant_n and_o all_o primitive_a priest_n fool_n or_o rather_o betrayer_n of_o that_o power_n and_o duty_n leave_v and_o enjoin_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n 5._o but_o though_o i_o can_v have_v digest_v this_o what_o art_n or_o violence_n can_v i_o make_v use_n of_o against_o my_o own_o reason_n and_o conscience_n to_o persuade_v myself_o to_o live_v in_o a_o church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o priest_n but_o a_o new_a order_n and_o title_n of_o minister_n make_v by_o a_o conspiracy_n of_o ignorant_a layman_n a_o church_n that_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o degrade_v and_o annul_v the_o order_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n because_o they_o have_v not_o be_v communicate_v to_o she_o a_o church_n which_o notwithstanding_o the_o express_a word_n of_o s_o paul_n epb._n 4._o who_o tell_v we_o that_o one_o of_o the_o special_a gift_n which_o o●r_a saviour_n upon_o his_o ascension_n receive_v from_o his_o father_n to_o enrich_v his_o church_n withal_o be_v that_o subordination_n of_o several_a order_n of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v till_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o profess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o subordination_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n before_o luther_n break_v his_o vow_n of_o chastity_n to_o make_v himself_o fit_a to_o propagate_v they_o and_o before_o culvin_n escape_v from_o noyon_n to_o geneva_n there_o to_o maintain_v the_o gate_n against_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o create_v minister_n under_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o prince_n place_n chap._n xi_o consent_v of_o father_n against_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n 1._o upon_o such_o ground_n of_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n if_o they_o can_v possible_o appear_v to_o be_v true_a what_o impudence_n and_o folly_n must_v we_o needs_o impute_v to_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o never_o fail_v in_o dispute_v against_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n to_o insist_v unanimous_o upon_o this_o quere_z by_o what_o lawful_a succession_n from_o what_o apostolic_a seat_n their_o first_o teacher_n derive_v himself_o and_o profess_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o insist_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o succession_n as_o to_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n themselves_o according_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n hom._n 11._o in_o ephes._n suppose_v you_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o say_v they_o be_v orthodox_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n ordination_n be_v lose_v and_o perish_v to_o what_o purpose_n be_v the_o rest_n this_o be_v not_o make_v good_a for_o we_o ought_v no_o less_o to_o contend_v for_o it_o then_o for_o the_o faith_n itself_o 2._o witness_v hereto_o s._n ireneus_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 45._o where_o be_v it_o then_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v find_v such_o pastor_n s._n paul_n teach_v we_o when_o he_o say_v god_n have_v place_v in_o his_o church_n first_o of_o all_o apostle_n secondary_o prophet_n in_o the_o three_o place_n doctor_n there_o then_o where_o the_o gift_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v place_v in_o the_o same_o place_n must_v we_o seek_v for_o the_o truth_n among_o who_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v maintain_v in_o its_o integrity_n witness_v s._n cyprian_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la magnum_fw-la whereas_o some_o allege_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n the_o same_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n this_o can_v nothing_o avail_v they_o viz._n be_v a_o schism_n for_o core_n dathan_n and_o abiron_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o god_n that_o aaron_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o moses_n do_v live_v under_o the_o same_o law_n &_o in_o the_o same_o religion_n they_o invoke_v that_o one_o and_o true_a god_n who_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v and_o pray_v to_o yet_o in_o as_o much_o as_o exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o their_o ministry_n they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o licence_n to_o sacrifice_v in_o opposition_n to_o aaron_n the_o high_a priest_n who_o by_o the_o ordination_n of_o god_n have_v before_o obtain_v the_o lawful_a priesthood_n they_o be_v supernatural_o strike_v present_o receive_v the_o just_a punishment_n of_o their_o unlawful_a attempt_n and_o again_o novatianus_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n neither_o can_v be_v account_v a_o bishop_n who_o despise_v the_o evangelicall_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n succeed_v to_o no_o person_n have_v be_v ordain_v by_o himself_o and_o again_o how_o can_v he_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o true_a pastor_n who_o the_o true_a pastor_n be_v alive_a and_o by_o a_o successive_a ordination_n preside_v in_o the_o church_n without_o succeed_v to_o any_o one_o begin_v from_o himself_o and_o again_o ep._n ad_fw-la flor._n christ_n say_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o to_o all_o prelate_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n by_o a_o substitute_n ordination_n vicariâ_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la he_o that_o bear_v you_o hear_v i_o witness_n s._n athanasius_n the_o synod_n how_o can_v they_o be_v bishop_n if_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o ordination_n from_o heretic_n even_o by_o their_o own_o accusation_n last_o to_o omit_v infinite_a passage_n in_o tertullian_n s._n augustin_n op●atus_n &c_n &c_n witness_v s._n hierome_n who_o speak_v of_o h_n lary_n the_o deacon_n author_n of_o one_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o luciferian_o in_o dial_n cont_n lucifer_n say_v together_o with_o the_o man_n his_o sect_n likewise_o be_v perish_v because_o a_o deacon_n can_v not_o ordain_v a_o clerk_n to_o succeed_v after_o he_o now_o it_o be_v not_o a_o church_n which_o have_v no_o priest_n 3._o be_v such_o argument_n as_o those_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v logical_a and_o efficacious_a in_o the_o three_o and_o four_o century_n of_o christianity_n and_o be_v they_o of_o no_o force_n now_o when_o be_v it_o that_o they_o begin_v to_o lose_v their_o virtue_n do_v all_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n bishop_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n champion_n of_o christian_a religion_n confound_v all_o the_o ancient_a heresy_n by_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o author_n of_o they_o have_v no_o personal_a legitimate_a nor_o doctrinal_a succession_n and_o shall_v we_o be_v make_v believe_v that_o such_o a_o succession_n now_o be_v not_o only_o not_o necessary_a but_o that_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o prejudice_n yea_o that_o it_o
expound_v heresy_n have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v utter_o vanish_v and_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o that_o rock_n which_o give_v peter_n that_o his_o new_a name_n continues_z firm_a and_o unmoveable_a and_o no_o doubt_n will_v do_v so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n whatsoever_o engine_n of_o cunning_a malice_n or_o rebellion_n the_o calvinist_n and_o other_o bloody_a sect_n do_v raise_v against_o it_o to_o batter_v it_o with_o great_a violence_n than_o ever_o before_o 6._o i_o be_o the_o more_o confirm_v in_o join_v thus_o with_o the_o father_n because_o i_o perceive_v that_o they_o yea_o that_o one_o single_a father_n of_o the_o first_o magnitude_n s._n augustine_n have_v already_o answer_v all_o the_o most_o considerable_a argument_n which_o the_o protestant_n of_o these_o time_n be_v ready_a to_o borrow_v of_o their_o father_n the_o donatist_n etc._n etc._n to_o destroy_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v already_o clear_v the_o objection_n from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n reduce_v to_o such_o a_o almost_o invisible_a estate_n that_o there_o be_v leave_v no_o more_o than_o seven_o thousand_o man_n and_o those_o hide_a which_o have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n and_o from_o that_o speech_n when_o the_o ●on_n of_o man_n come_v shall_v he_o find_v faith_n upon_o earth_n and_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n and_o from_o the_o example_n of_o that_o great_a eclipse_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n during_o the_o interregnum_fw-la of_o arianisme_n s._n aug._n collat_n post_fw-la con_fw-mi don._n cap._n 20._o id_fw-la l._n 81._o quaest_n qu._n 61._o id_fw-la d●_n un._n eccl._n s._n hier._n con_v lucif_n s._n aug._n ep._n 48._o chap._n xxix_o the_o objection_n from_o the_o overflow_n of_o arianism_n in_o the_o church_n answer_v mr._n chillingworth_n objection_n that_o christ_n promise_n be_v conditional_a answer_v 1._o this_o last_o objection_n concern_v arianism_n because_o even_o the-now-english-protestants_a think_v they_o have_v great_a advantage_n from_o it_o i_o be_o not_o in_o so_o much_o haste_n to_o draw_v towards_o a_o end_n of_o this_o conclusion_n but_o i_o can_v be_v content_a to_o set_v down_o s._n augustin_n answer_n to_o it_o with_o a_o short_a appendix_n it_o seem_v the_o donatist_n take_v the_o advantage_n from_o some_o hyperbolical_a language_n of_o s._n hilary_n concern_v the_o great_a deluge_n of_o arianism_n upon_o the_o church_n to_o enervate_a the_o promise_n of_o christ_n concern_v the_o extension_n and_o duration_n of_o it_o to_o this_o s._n augustine_n ep._n 48._o thus_o answer_v that_o time_n concern_v which_o hilary_n write_v be_v such_o that_o thou_o have_v think_v that_o thou_o may_v privy_o assault_v such_o a_o number_n of_o divine_a testimony_n as_o if_o the_o church_n be_v perish_v out_o of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n hilary_n therefore_o either_o blame_n only_o the_o tare_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ten_o asian_a province_n and_o not_o the_o wheat_n or_o he_o think_v fit_a therefore_o the_o more_o profitable_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o vehement_o to_o blame_v the_o wheat_n which_o by_o some_o default_n be_v in_o danger_n for_o even_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v this_o custom_n in_o reprehension_n that_o the_o word_n seem_v to_o be_v address_v to_o all_o when_o it_o reach_v home_o only_o to_o some_o few_o 2._o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o answer_n of_o s._n augustine_n it_o may_v be_v observe_v 1._o that_o the_o violent_a brunt_n of_o that_o persecution_n of_o the_o catholic_n by_o the_o arrian_n last_v scarce_a four_o year_n namely_o from_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n 2._o that_o during_o that_o time_n the_o western_a church_n feel_v little_a change_n by_o that_o persecution_n 3._o that_o those_o who_o subscribe_v the_o cunning_o contrive_a creed_n at_o ariminum_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o prejudice_v thereby_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a since_o the_o new_a creed_n be_v capable_a of_o a_o catholic_a sense_n 4._o that_o even_o in_o the_o east_n very_o many_o glorious_a catholic_a bishop_n survive_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o arrian_n 5._o that_o the_o succession_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v interrupt_v thereby_o that_o s._n hierome_n who_o live_v near_o those_o time_n profess_v that_o in_o his_o day_n there_o be_v not_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v not_o a_o legitimate_a successor_n of_o those_o glorious_a prelate_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a from_o all_o which_o consideration_n we_o may_v rational_o collect_v that_o our_o lord_n in_o this_o example_n give_v a_o warning_n to_o the_o ruler_n of_o his_o church_n to_o be_v vigilant_a to_o prevent_v the_o like_a dangerous_a heresy_n for_o the_o future_a but_o withal_o to_o be_v confident_a in_o his_o promise_n since_o he_o have_v be_v so_o careful_a to_o perform_v they_o that_o when_o heresy_n have_v all_o imagineable_a advantage_n yet_o he_o provide_v so_o for_o his_o church_n by_o put_v a_o end_n to_o those_o tentation_n that_o the_o succession_n of_o lawful_a bishop_n be_v not_o at_o all_o interrupt_v by_o they_o 3._o beside_o these_o mr._n chillingworth_n produce_v a_o engine_n his_o friend_n know_v from_o what_o forge_n to_o invalidate_v as_o he_o believe_v all_o manner_n of_o advantage_n which_o catholic_n reap_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n concern_v a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o his_o church_n by_o say_v that_o those_o promise_n be_v only_o conditional_a viz._n if_o christian_n will_v make_v use_n of_o and_o improve_v those_o mean_n that_o christ_n have_v leave_v for_o the_o propagation_n of_o his_o church_n otherwise_o not_o 4._o but_o hereto_o the_o answer_n be_v very_o ready_a for_o 1._o all_o that_o be_v allege_v be_v speak_v mere_o gratis_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n from_o any_o circumstance_n in_o those_o text_n wherein_o such_o promise_n be_v contain_v for_o such_o a_o interpretation_n and_o therefore_o when_o plain_a text_n be_v and_o have_v be_v interpret_v in_o a_o sense_n absolute_a by_o all_o catholic_n of_o all_o time_n a_o new_a unnecessary_a interpretation_n will_v certain_o find_v no_o entertainment_n with_o any_o unless_o it_o be_v such_o as_o make_v antiquity_n a_o prejudice_n to_o truth_n 2._o m._n chillingworth_n apply_v this_o interpretation_n to_o future_a time_n only_o not_o to_o pass_v or_o present_a so_o that_o thereby_o it_o shake_v only_o our_o hope_n for_o succeed_a time_n not_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o pass_v or_o present_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o available_a in_o the_o dispute_n in_o hand_n concern_v the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n which_o all_o english_a protestant_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n defective_a in_o no_o necessary_a truth_n all_o the_o fault_n be_v her_o superabundance_n 5._o and_o for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o general_o he_o be_v blame_v and_o i_o myself_o have_v often_o tax_v he_o for_o serve_v himself_o of_o so_o scandalous_a and_o as_o we_o think_v so_o useless_a a_o interpretation_n but_o upon_o more_o serious_a consideration_n i_o judge_v not_o he_o unreasonable_a for_o it_o but_o my_o self_n and_o other_o not_o quick-sighted_a enough_o to_o perceive_v the_o necessity_n he_o have_v though_o he_o never_o discover_v himself_o plain_o to_o any_o man_n as_o far_o as_o i_o know_v to_o make_v use_n of_o so_o desperate_a a_o gloss_n for_o doubtless_o he_o see_v clear_o that_o if_o there_o be_v such_o absolute_a promise_n of_o indefectibility_n and_o divine_a assistance_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n none_o can_v with_o any_o justice_n challenge_v they_o but_o the_o roman_a church_n since_o she_o only_o appropriate_v they_o to_o her_o present_a communion_n all_o other_o lay_v down_o their_o claim_n the_o special_a allegation_n which_o she_o may_v produce_v to_o prove_v herself_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n interest_v in_o these_o promise_n i_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o last_o conclusion_n last_o s._n augustine_n will_v afford_v we_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n who_o to_o the_o like_a objection_n of_o the_o donatist_n viz._n man_n will_v not_o persevere_v and_o therefore_o christian_a religion_n have_v fail_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n except_o only_o the_o party_n of_o donatus_n answer_v he_o as_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v ignorant_a what_o will_v be_v the_o future_a will_n of_o man_n which_o yet_o foresee_v notwithstanding_o foretell_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccl._n c._n 12._o chap._n xxx_o the_o general_a ground_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n viz._n christ_n promise_n the_o several_a subject_n and_o act_n thereof_o 1._o to_o return_v therefore_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n by_o virtue_n of_o which_o she_o oblige_v all_o man_n in_o her_o communion_n
be_v doubtful_a that_o he_o be_v wrong_a a_o guide_n that_o the_o scripture_n never_o mention_v and_o the_o church_n never_o hear_v of_o but_o suppose_v by_o be_v call_v a_o church_n that_o it_o never_o shall_v be_v hearken_v to_o so_o that_o whether_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o church_n or_o all_o of_o they_o be_v follow_v such_o a_o guide_n ought_v to_o be_v desert_v and_o renounce_v a_o guide_n that_o two_o person_n can_v possible_o follow_v together_o because_o no_o two_o person_n that_o ever_o follow_v any_o other_o guide_n beside_o authority_n do_v or_o can_v think_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v reasonable_a that_o any_o other_o think_v so_o and_o last_o by_o consequence_n such_o a_o guide_n that_o as_o long_o as_o he_o continue_v in_o the_o office_n there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o church_n any_o where_o and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o infallible_a eviction_n that_o this_o be_v a_o imaginary_a seduce_a guide_n since_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o that_o shall_v be_v a_o guide_n appoint_v for_o any_o christian_a which_o neither_o christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o follower_n ever_o mention_v yea_o which_o do_v formal_o destroy_v one_o of_o our_o twelve_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la 12._o and_o yet_o when_o all_o this_o be_v say_v even_o this_o be_v a_o less_o unreasonable_a and_o less_o unsafe_a guide_n than_o any_o divide_a particular_a church_n can_v be_v for_o this_o hoodwink_v guide_n inquire_v into_o scripture_n and_o search_v after_o tradition_n may_v possible_o stumble_v upon_o the_o way_n to_o unity_n and_o truth_n that_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n for_o private_a reason_n profess_v the_o exclusion_n of_o partiality_n and_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o take_v into_o consideration_n whether_o itself_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v renounce_v and_o authority_n submit_v to_o and_o if_o it_o chance_v to_o find_v reason_n for_o authority_n it_o will_v resign_v its_o office_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o guide_n any_o long_o or_o private_a reason_n any_o long_o whereas_o particular_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o renounce_n of_o universal_a authority_n in_o practice_n and_o yet_o usurp_v that_o authority_n which_o they_o renounce_v do_v not_o only_o mislead_v their_o follower_n but_o have_v seize_v on_o they_o do_v chain_n and_o fasten_v they_o in_o that_o dung_n on_o chap._n vii_o a_o conclude_a exhortation_n wherein_o all_o be_v invite_v to_o catholic_a unity_n 1._o for_o a_o farewell_n to_o i._o p._n and_o all_o his_o brethren_n and_o to_o all_o my_o dear_a mislead_v countryman_n of_o what_o religion_n sect_n or_o faction_n soever_o but_o principal_o the_o protestant_n presbyterian_o and_o independent_o i_o beseech_v they_o all_o to_o suffer_v a_o word_n of_o exhortation_n make_v by_o st_n paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n phil._n 2._o si_fw-mi quae_fw-la ergo_fw-la consolatio_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la si_fw-la quod_fw-la solatium_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o there_o be_v any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o comfort_n of_o charity_n if_o any_o society_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o b●●els_n of_o compassion_n fulfil_v the_o joy_n of_o st_n paul_n and_o all_o saint_n that_o you_o be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n have_v the_o same_o charity_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n think_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v think_v catholic_a unity_n a_o desirable_a thing_n and_o pursue_v the_o way_n to_o attain_v it_o 2._o now_o the_o sun_n shine_v not_o clear_a at_o noon_n then_o this_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v no_o possible_a unity_n without_o authority_n nor_o no_o christian_a unity_n without_o a_o infallible_a authority_n all_o other_o authority_n be_v mere_a faction_n and_o rebellion_n a_o authority_n that_o reach_v to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n or_o that_o bind_v only_o the_o purse_n if_o there_o be_v any_o true_a spiritual_a authority_n late_o in_o england_n or_o now_o at_o geneva_n etc._n etc._n it_o will_v engage_v the_o conscience_n of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o it_o and_o that_o not_o as_o english_a man_n or_o french_a but_o as_o christian_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o christian_n shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v to_o it_o a_o thing_n that_o themselves_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o therefore_o by_o all_o those_o passionate_a exhortation_n of_o st._n paul_n i_o conjure_v you_o be_v no_o long_o averse_a from_o catholic_n unity_n and_o catholic_n authority_n for_o be_v assure_v without_o such_o unity_n and_o authority_n submit_v to_o you_o will_v find_v no_o consolation_n no_o not_o in_o christ_n himself_o no_o comfort_n in_o the_o charity_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o society_n with_o the_o ●●_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n 3._o do_v not_o according_a to_o your_o mistake_a custom_n account_v we_o uncharitable_a in_o profess_v that_o salvation_n can_v belong_v to_o any_o that_o be_v estrange_v from_o our_o catholic_n communion_n we_o can_v not_o be_v catholic_n if_o we_o say_v not_o so_o thereby_o we_o approve_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o lawful_a child_n of_o the_o ancient_a saint_n martyr_n confessor_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o out_o of_o their_o burn_a charity_n not_o pride_n or_o malice_n protest_v damnation_n to_o all_o out_o of_o their_o communion_n for_o how_o can_v they_o or_o we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n unless_o we_o exclude_v false_a church_n st._n augustin_n be_v the_o benign_a humble_a charitable_a soul_n in_o his_o age_n yet_o who_o thunder_v so_o loud_o and_o so_o terrible_o against_o schismatic_n as_o he_o and_o his_o enemy_n the_o donatist_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o the_o end_n to_o justify_v seem_o their_o false_a plea_n be_v force_v to_o denounce_v damnation_n to_o all_o from_o who_o they_o be_v divide_v otherwise_o they_o will_v not_o have_v have_v so_o much_o as_o the_o show_n of_o catholic_n 4._o more_o particular_o address_v myself_o to_o my_o most_o dear_a friend_n the_o english_a protestant_n of_o who_o communion_n i_o once_o be_v a_o seduce_a member_n consider_v i_o beseech_v you_o that_o that_o which_o at_o the_o first_o compose_v of_o this_o book_n i_o only_o suspect_v may_v possible_o happen_v be_v now_o abundant_o effect_v god_n have_v in_o part_n visit_v on_o you_o the_o persecution_n and_o injustice_n you_o lay_v upon_o we_o now_o do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o your_o church_n be_v the_o mere_a creature_n of_o state-policy_n if_o it_o have_v have_v the_o power_n of_o religion_n the_o decay_n of_o your_o ecclestical_a estate_n or_o imprisonment_n of_o your_o bishop_n will_v not_o have_v destroy_v authority_n among_o you_o the_o censure_n of_o a_o captive_a pope_n or_o excommunication_n of_o a_o synod_n meet_v in_o a_o grot_n be_v as_o terrible_a to_o irregular_a disobedient_a catholic_n as_o if_o they_o have_v thunder_v from_o the_o capitol_n or_o the_o imperial_a palace_n in_o constantinople_n where_o be_v the_o proof_n now_o of_o your_o spiritual_a power_n why_o do_v not_o you_o thunder_v out_o your_o excommunication_n against_o the_o subverter_n of_o your_o religion_n or_o against_o your_o own_o daily_a revolt_a subject_n alas_o who_o will_v be_v fright_v with_o such_o anathema_n or_o what_o subject_n have_v you_o now_o after_o the_o loss_n of_o your_o temporal_a lordship_n and_o which_o way_n shall_v those_o lordship_n be_v regain_v that_o you_o may_v become_v a_o church_n again_o those_o that_o be_v once_o content_a you_o shall_v enjoy_v they_o will_v not_o adventure_v their_o own_o estate_n to_o recover_v they_o for_o you_o the_o lutheran_n be_v too_o far_o off_o and_o the_o calvinist_n too_o near_o you_o may_v comfort_v yourselves_o with_o your_o liturgy_n and_o perhaps_o your_o surplice_n wear_v in_o private_a conventicle_n but_o as_o for_o a_o succession_n of_o priest_n or_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v hope_v much_o less_o a_o restauration_n of_o your_o religion_n which_o be_v now_o quite_o out_o of_o date_n 5._o to_o what_o church_n will_v you_o now_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o the_o scotish_n kirk_n or_o your_o own_a presbyterian_o the_o first_o incendiary_n of_o all_o these_o trouble_n the_o idumaean_n that_o cry_v exinanite_n exinanite_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la or_o to_o their_o successor_n of_o a_o thousand_o name_n and_o shape_n and_o all_o of_o they_o frighrful_a what_o be_v it_o that_o hold_v you_o from_o return_v to_o catholic_n communion_n what_o other_o injury_n have_v we_o do_v you_o except_o that_o we_o have_v force_v you_o to_o blush_v to_o see_v how_o patient_o we_o suffer_v your_o injustice_n oppression_n and_o persecution_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v you_o be_v not_o so_o much_o our_o persecutor_n as_o that_o poisonous_a generation_n of_o calvinist_n among_o you_o they_o be_v those_o who_o instill_a fury_n into_o our_o king_n and_o parliament_n and_o poison_n into_o the_o law_n against_o we_o which_o very_a law_n be_v still_o keep_v in_o force_n against_o catholic_n
that_o hate_v they_o must_v thereby_o have_v profess_v that_o they_o hate_v innocence_n and_o christian_a 〈◊〉_d itself_o and_o so_o far_o from_o provoke_v he_o that_o they_o have_v no_o other_o commerce_n with_o mankind_n but_o only_o in_o pray_v for_o it_o but_o have_v not_o almighty_a god_n give_v a_o success_n answerable_a for_o what_o remain_v of_o that_o impious_a king_n after_o six_o marriage_n lawful_a &_o unlawful_a and_o innumerable_a 〈◊〉_d but_o only_o the_o issue_n of_o a_o wicked_a soul_n viz._n god_n know_v how_o many_o seditious_a murder_n sacrilege_n schism_n &_o be●●s●●r●_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n those_o innor●●●_n martyr_n d●●_n no_o doubt_n from_o heaven_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o joy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o a_o lawful_a seed_n propagate_v in_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d way_n &_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n piety_n charity_n &_o devotion_n which_o the●●●●●●lif●ed_v with_o their_o life_n and_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n a_o blessing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o other_o religious_a english_a order_n of_o man_n only_o allow_v to_o you_o though_o contrary_a to_o all_o humane_a judgement_n and_o probability_n you_o be_v person_n whole_o uninteress_v in_o secular_a design_n unknown_a to_o the_o world_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o your_o solitude_n and_o never-discontinued_n devotion_n uncapable_a of_o solicit_v for_o the_o assistance_n of_o other_o be_v please_v therefore_o right_a rr._n ff_n with_o your_o natural_a benignity_n and_o charity_n to_o admit_v this_o discourse_n into_o your_o peaceful_a solitude_n a_o blessing_n which_o the_o author_n alas_o dare_v not_o promise_n to_o himself_o since_o by_o himself_o he_o be_v judge_v unworthy_a and_o by_o other_o uncapable_a of_o it_o he_o do_v notwithstanding_o with_o the_o great_a confidence_n expect_v this_o favour_n of_o your_o charity_n to_o his_o book_n because_o he_o may_v pretend_v in_o some_o degree_n to_o deserve_v it_o since_o by_o present_v this_o narration_n to_o your_o view_n he_o shall_v afford_v unto_o you_o who_o live_v the_o life_n of_o angel_n the_o pleasure_n of_o angel_n viz._n a_o occasion_n to_o rejoice_v at_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o angel_n too_o which_o be_v to_o procure_v at_o least_o by_o their_o prayer_n a_o continuance_n of_o divine_a mercy_n to_o he_o which_o if_o by_o be_v remem_fw-la breed_v in_o your_o devotion_n he_o shall_v obtain_v he_o will_v think_v that_o he_o have_v prudent_o choose_v to_o prefer_v your_o patronage_n before_o that_o of_o the_o great_a prince_n your_o rr._n fatherhood_n most_o humble_a and_o devote_a servant_n h._n p._n de_fw-fr cressy_n approbatio_fw-la no●_n fr._n placidus_n gascoigne_n benedictinorum_n ●ongregationis_fw-la anglicanae_n praeses_fw-la generalis_fw-la librum_fw-la hune_v inscriptum_fw-la exomologesis_fw-la or_o a_o narration_n etc._n etc._n à_fw-la duobus_fw-la congregationis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la theologis_fw-la à_fw-la capitulo_fw-la generali_fw-la ad_fw-la id_fw-la deputatis_fw-la lectum_fw-la &_o approbatum_fw-la typis_fw-la excudi_fw-la permittimus_fw-la in_o quorum_fw-la fidem_fw-la nomen_fw-la nostrum_fw-la subscripsimus_fw-la datum_n in_o conventu_fw-la nostro_fw-la parisiensi_fw-la 10._o augusti_fw-la 1652._o fr._n placidus_n gascoigne_n praeses_fw-la qui_fw-la supra_fw-la approbatio_fw-la ego_fw-la subscriptus_fw-la in_o sacrâ_fw-la theologiâ_fw-la facultate_fw-la parisiensi_fw-la magister_fw-la perlegi_fw-la tractatum_fw-la hunc_fw-la cui_fw-la titulus_fw-la est_fw-la exomologesis_fw-la or_o a_o faithful_a narration_n of_o the_o occasion_n and_o motive_n of_o the_o conversion_n unto_o catholic_a unity_n of_o hugh-paulin_a de_fw-fr cressy_n etc._n etc._n quem_fw-la &_o catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la consonum_fw-la inveni_fw-la &_o veritati_fw-la revelatae_fw-la catholicè_fw-la credentes_fw-la certissimis_fw-la inniti_fw-la principiis_fw-la ad_fw-la summos_fw-la rationis_fw-la apices_fw-la ostendentem_fw-la hic_fw-la etenim_fw-la libellus_fw-la evidentissimè_fw-la demonstrat_fw-la exotica_fw-la &_o petulantissima_fw-la socinianorum_n posita_fw-la qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la soli_fw-la eorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la qui_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la desciuêre_fw-la videntur_fw-la aliquatenus_fw-la ratiocinari_fw-la ipsiusmet_fw-la religionis_fw-la fundamenta_fw-la subvertere_fw-la quos_fw-la verò_fw-la haud_fw-la jam_fw-la diu_fw-la protestantium_fw-la nomine_fw-la notatos_fw-la habuimus_fw-la anglos_n nominatim_fw-la quantúmvis_fw-la veterem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o antiquos_fw-la patres_fw-la crepent_fw-la novitatis_fw-la schismatis_fw-la &_o erroris_fw-la manifestissimè_fw-la evinxit_fw-la quapropter_fw-la typis_fw-la utiliter_fw-la mandari_fw-la posle_n judicavi_fw-la datum_n parisiis_fw-la 15._o junii_fw-la 1647._o h._n holden_n permission_n veu_n i'approbation_n de_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr henry_n holden_n docteur_fw-fr en_fw-fr theologie_n permis_fw-fr d'imprimer_n le_fw-fr premier_fw-fr de_fw-fr juillet_n 1647._o signè_fw-la daubray_n approbatio_fw-la hvnc_fw-la quem_fw-la jam_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquot_fw-la annis_fw-la diligenter_fw-la perlegi_fw-la &_o approbavi_fw-la librum_fw-la cujus_fw-la titulus_fw-la est_fw-la exomologesis_fw-la etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la suprà_fw-la iterum_fw-la libenter_fw-la approbo_fw-la ea_fw-la vero_fw-la loca_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la aliquibus_fw-la vel_fw-la ex_fw-la inscitia_fw-la vel_fw-la ex_fw-la pravo_fw-la affectu_fw-la malè_fw-la intellecta_fw-la audiverit_fw-la author_n clariori_fw-la modo_fw-la aliísque_fw-la verbis_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la secunda_fw-la editione_n explicuit_fw-la qui_fw-la nedum_fw-la infirmis_fw-la voluit_fw-la scandalum_fw-la praebere_fw-la appendiculam_fw-la etiam_fw-la adjunxit_fw-la quâ_fw-la heterodoxi_fw-la cujusdam_fw-la anonymi_fw-la leviores_fw-la quasdam_fw-la in_o doctrinam_fw-la s●●am_fw-la &_o catholicam_fw-la objectiunculas_fw-la dissolvit_fw-la ac_fw-la pessundedit_fw-la quae_fw-la omne_fw-la testor_fw-la esse_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o pietati_fw-la congrua_fw-la ac_fw-la proinde_fw-la librum_fw-la hunc_fw-la dignissimum_fw-la judico_fw-la qui_fw-la denuò_fw-la typis_fw-la promulgetur_fw-la datum_n parisiis_fw-la 12._o octobris_fw-la 1652._o h._n holden_n approbatio_fw-la librum_fw-la cuititulus_fw-la exomologesis_fw-la etc._n etc._n unà_fw-la cum_fw-la appendice_fw-la legi_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la nihil_fw-la orthodoxiae_fw-la aut_fw-la christianae_n pietati_fw-la dissonum_fw-la deprehendi_fw-la imò_fw-la methodo_fw-la facili_fw-la compendio_fw-la sa_fw-fr vincéque_fw-la secura_fw-la veritas_fw-la verè_fw-la catholica_fw-la catholicis_fw-la fundamentis_fw-la stabilitur_fw-la omnésque_fw-la simul_fw-la haereses_fw-la solidè_fw-la modestè_fw-la &_o eruditè_fw-fr refelluntur_fw-la ideóque_fw-la dignum_fw-la judico_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o communem_fw-la utilitatem_fw-la saepiùs_fw-la imprimatur_fw-la datum_n parisiis_fw-la 20._o octob._n 1652._o fr._n paulus_n dei_fw-la custodiens_fw-la s._n theologiae_n doctor_n &_o diffinitor_fw-la congregationis_fw-la anglo_n ben._n ad_fw-la dignissimum_fw-la authorem_fw-la legi_fw-la &_o perlegi_fw-la exomologesim_fw-la tuam_fw-la o_o verè_fw-la seren●_n &_o magnopere_fw-la delectatus_fw-la cum_fw-la orationis_fw-la facilitate_v &_o methodi_fw-la luce_n tum_fw-la multò_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o animi_fw-la candore_fw-la &_o sulco_fw-la luminis_fw-la quo_fw-la viam_fw-la è_fw-la periculosissimo_fw-la errore_fw-la ad_fw-la constantissimam_fw-la veritatem_fw-la penitus_fw-la instravisti_fw-la neque_fw-la quin_fw-la tibi_fw-la gratularer_fw-la &_o editionem_fw-la commendarem_fw-la neque_fw-la si_fw-la quos_fw-la mei_fw-la nominis_fw-la quam_fw-la desideras_fw-la ad_fw-la scriptio_fw-la movere_fw-la potest_fw-la iis_fw-la illam_fw-la nè_fw-la acceptissimam_fw-la facerem_fw-la i_o potui_fw-la continere_fw-la datum_n è_fw-la tuguriolo_fw-la meo_fw-la pridie_fw-la kalendas_fw-la octobris_fw-la anno_fw-la salutis_fw-la suprà_fw-la millesimum_fw-la sexcentesimum_fw-la quingagesimo_fw-la secundo_fw-la thomas_n albius_n s._n theologiae_n professor_n approbatio_fw-la accepto_fw-la theologi_fw-la viri_fw-la docti_fw-la ac_fw-la side_n digni_fw-la testimonio_fw-la cui_fw-la librum_fw-la hunc_fw-la inscriptum_fw-la exomologesis_fw-la or_o a_o faithful_a narration_n etc._n etc._n perlegendum_fw-la commisi_fw-la nihil_fw-la ho_o in_fw-la opere_fw-la contra_fw-la fidem_fw-la ac_fw-la bonos_fw-es more_o be_v quinimò_fw-la plurimum_fw-la utilitatis_fw-la ad_fw-la reducendas_fw-la intra_fw-la gremium_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la oves_fw-la perditas_fw-la eásque_fw-la veritati_fw-la pristinae_fw-la vindicandas_fw-la contineri_fw-la librum_fw-la istum_fw-la meritò_fw-la imprimendum_fw-la ac_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la summè_fw-la commendandum_fw-la censeo_fw-la datum_n è_fw-fr musaeo_n nostro_fw-la 1._o octobr._n 1652._o h._n metham_n e._n c._n v._o g._n &_o olim_fw-la s_o theol._n professor_n approbatio_fw-la exomologêsim_fw-la hanc_fw-la antiquae_fw-la fidei_fw-la vindicem_fw-la ab_fw-la eruditissimo_fw-la domino_fw-la d._n sereno_n cressy_n viro_fw-la novatoribus_fw-la invidendo_fw-la conscriptam_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la oculis_fw-la hominum_fw-la orthodoxè_fw-la sapientium_fw-la quam_fw-la animus_fw-la imprimendam_fw-la judico_fw-la dignum_fw-la siquidem_fw-la ut_fw-la sphaeram_fw-la planè_fw-la candidam_fw-la inveniat_fw-la silius_fw-la lucis_fw-la emancipatus_fw-la ex_fw-la regno_fw-la tenebrarum_fw-la prodeat_fw-la igitur_fw-la è_fw-la coelo_fw-la svo_fw-la sidus_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la palàm_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la radios_fw-la videant_fw-la ultro-coecutientes_a opus_fw-la typis_fw-la evulgetur_fw-la dat._v 3_o kalend._n octob._n 1652._o t._n i._o sacrae_fw-la theologia_n professor_n s._n augustin_n ep._n ad_fw-la fund_z c._n 4._o omit_v therefore_o that_o wisdom_n which_o you_o deny_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o most_o just_o retain_v ine_z in_o her_o b●●ome_n the_o consent_n of_o peoples_n and_o nation_n retain_v i_o there_o authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n augment_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n retain_v i_o there_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n ever_o since_o the_o scat_n of_o s._n
say_v he_o be_v very_o well_o and_o frequent_o acquaint_v with_o have_v eat_v more_o than_o one_o measure_n of_o salt_n with_o he_o the_o devil_n sleep_v with_o he_o often_o than_o his_o wife_n katherine_n such_o mercy_n and_o goodness_n and_o care_n have_v almighty_a god_n have_v over_o his_o church_n to_o open_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o by_o such_o a_o miracle_n to_o discover_v the_o true_a author_n of_o schism_n 4._o then_o for_o calvin_n conrade_n schluss●iburg●_n in_o theolog._n calvin_n lib._n 1._o fol_n 72._o and_o cap._n 12._o 4._o not_o to_o take_v advantage_n of_o the_o character_n give_v he_o by_o a_o learned_a protestant_n which_o will_v represent_v he_o so_o stain_v even_o with_o fleshly_a lust_n also_o in_o a_o degree_n beyond_o luther_n lust_n so_o horrible_a and_o unnatural_a that_o i_o can_v obtain_v from_o myself_o permission_n to_o defile_v this_o paper_n with_o transcribe_v his_o word_n and_o not_o to_o repeat_v his_o forementioned_a seditious_a bloody_a position_n befit_v rather_o the_o alcoran_n than_o write_n of_o christian_a institution_n or_o commentary_n to_o omit_v likewise_o any_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n by_o which_o in_o immediate_a consequence_n he_o destroy_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o justice_n and_o sanctity_n of_o almighty_a god_n make_v he_o formal_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n the_o only_a read_n of_o his_o book_n against_o his_o adversary_n and_o particular_o against_o cassander_n and_o castalio_n will_v acquaint_v any_o man_n with_o what_o a_o spirit_n he_o be_v possess_v and_o agitate_a a_o spirit_n that_o suggest_v to_o he_o word_n to_o express_v the_o utmost_a extremity_n of_o pride_n envy_n and_o malice_n that_o a_o humane_a soul_n can_v be_v capable_a of_o certain_o if_o that_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o question_v it_o which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n tell_v we_o that_o into_o a_o unclean_a soul_n the_o spirit_n of_o discipline_n will_v not_o enter_v and_o again_o that_o god_n reveal_v his_o mystery_n to_o the_o humble_a and_o meek_a it_o be_v not_o without_o a_o great_a care_n that_o god_n have_v of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n that_o he_o suffer_v those_o two_o great_a teacher_n of_o schism_n to_o discover_v in_o themselves_o all_o manner_n of_o uncleanness_n both_o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n as_o if_o on_o purpose_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o same_o person_n while_o they_o be_v present_v to_o the_o world_n the_o cup_n of_o their_o poisonous_a doctrine_n shall_v likewise_o at_o the_o same_o time_n give_v warning_n that_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o poison_n which_o proceed_v from_o such_o heart_n full_a of_o all_o uncleanness_n &_o the_o gall_n of_o bitternisse_fw-la for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o confess_v i_o have_v not_o the_o courage_n to_o follow_v he_o who_o profess_v that_o he_o follow_v the_o devil_n and_o describe_v himself_o a_o attendant_n befit_v such_o a_o leader_n neither_o can_v i_o be_v mistake_v to_o such_o a_o point_n as_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o resemblance_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o of_o calvin_n though_o the_o devil_n can_v sometime_o transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n circumvent_v those_o who_o sin_n have_v deserve_v that_o god_n shall_v give_v leave_n to_o such_o a_o efficacy_n of_o error_n yet_o here_o the_o devil_n use_v not_o so_o much_o cunning_n he_o appear_v like_o himself_o with_o his_o natural_a ugliness_n and_o horror_n and_o his_o minister_n wear_v his_o livery_n however_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o christ_n shall_v transform_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o darkness_n vitium_fw-la simulari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la virtus_fw-la potest_fw-la chap._n xvi_o the_o author_n unquietness_n not_o be_v able_a to_o communicate_v with_o calvinist_n etc._n etc._n reflection_n upon_o the_o several_a eastern_a church_n 1._o have_v proceed_v thus_o far_o in_o my_o search_n of_o a_o church_n and_o find_v after_o a_o unpartial_a disquisition_n that_o among_o all_o the_o sect_n in_o the_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o can_v not_o find_v any_o congregation_n unto_o the_o communion_n of_o which_o i_o can_v without_o hypocrisy_n adhere_v if_o that_o church_n wherein_o i_o have_v be_v breed_v shall_v come_v to_o fail_v a_o supposition_n not_o only_o possible_a but_o as_o the_o case_n begin_v to_o be_v ever_o this_o time_n even_o very_o probable_a i_o fall_v into_o a_o great_a perplexity_n of_o mind_n so_o great_a that_o i_o can_v not_o perceive_v any_o cure_n for_o it_o no_o not_o though_o god_n shall_v bless_v the_o king_n of_o england_n so_o far_o as_o to_o give_v he_o a_o entire_a victory_n over_o his_o enemy_n and_o a_o power_n to_o restore_v that_o church_n to_o its_o former_a lustre_n for_o i_o now_o plain_o perceive_v that_o hitherto_o my_o title_n of_o be_v a_o christian_a and_o a_o member_n of_o god_n church_n all_o my_o interest_n and_o hope_n of_o blessedness_n depend_v upon_o a_o church_n that_o never_o do_v pretend_v either_o to_o indefectibility_n infallibility_n or_o authority_n oblige_v any_o other_o then_o only_a those_o that_o live_v in_o her_o communion●_n and_o those_o not_o in_o conscience_n but_o only_o upon_o penalty_n of_o be_v deprive_v of_o certain_a priviledgess_n and_o preferment_n belong_v to_o english_a subject_n upon_o a_o church_n that_o never_o pretend_v to_o declare_v or_o decide_v article_n of_o faith_n any_o other_o than_o some_o few_o negative_a one_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o to_o fulminate_v auathemas_n against_o whosoever_o submit_v not_o to_o her_o decision_n as_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v last_o upon_o a_o church_n that_o as_o god_n know_v it_o appear_v now_o manifest_o have_v no_o sure_a foundation_n than_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o king_n and_o continuance_n of_o his_o civil_a authority_n 2._o to_o gain_v some_o ease_n to_o my_o mind_n i_o apply_v myself_o to_o a_o re-examination_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la i_o have_v against_o the_o other_o reform_a church_n none_o of_o which_o i_o can_v clear_o take_v away_o and_o particular_o concern_v the_o want_n of_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pastor_n i_o assure_v myself_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v defend_v or_o excuse_v nothing_o that_o i_o can_v invent_v myself_o or_o learn_v from_o other_o have_v any_o show_n of_o the_o least_o probability_n or_o deserve_v to_o be_v confute_v 3._o when_o this_o succeed_v not_o i_o travel_v in_o my_o mind_n over_o the_o eastern_a country_n for_o still_o i_o be_v prepossess_v that_o the_o main_a ground_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n namely_o the_o infallibility_n of_o that_o church_n be_v as_o demonstrative_o confutable_a as_o any_o absurdity_n in_o mathematics_n and_o therefore_o though_o in_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o difference_n i_o approach_v as_o near_o unto_o its_o belief_n as_o mounseur_fw-fr grotius_n or_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr millitiere_n yet_o that_o main_a foundation_n be_v as_o i_o think_v ruinous_a it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o trouble_v myself_o with_o any_o debate_n concern_v that_o church_n but_o as_o ill_a success_n i_o have_v in_o the_o east_n now_o as_o before_o near_a home_n for_o of_o those_o church_n the_o maronites_n i_o find_v be_v in_o communion_n and_o belief_n agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o abissives_n be_v a_o schismatical_a church_n divide_v both_o from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n now_o almost_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n since_o namely_o upon_o the_o anathematise_v of_o the_o eutychian_a heresy_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o nestorian_n jacobite_n and_o other_o haereticall_a church_n in_o the_o eastern_a country_n as_o for_o the_o grecian_a church_n they_o bring_v almost_o all_o the_o same_o difficulty_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v for_o almost_o in_o all_o point_n wherein_o the_o english_a church_n differ_v from_o the_o roman_a they_o agree_v with_o it_o in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o english_a agree_v with_o the_o roman_a against_o they_o and_o their_o assume_v equal_a authority_n with_o the_o pope_n be_v apparent_o a_o usurpation_n chap._n xvii_o necessity_n of_o the_o author_n examine_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n several_a advantage_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o that_o church_n 1._o thus_o like_o noah_n dovo_fw-la weary_v myself_o in_o fly_v up_o and_o down_o and_o find_v ●●_o rest_n for_o the_o sole_n of_o my_o foot_n i_o be_v at_o last_o force_v to_o return_v into_o the_o ark_n see_v what_o ever_o become_v of_o the_o english_a church_n i_o now_o find_v reason_n enough_o not_o to_o think_v myself_o safe_a enough_o in_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o good_a while_n before_o i_o get_v any_o sight_n of_o the_o ark_n
consider_v in_o a_o desperate_a estate_n for_o want_n of_o mean_n or_o space_n to_o inform_v himself_o further_o than_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o creed_n or_o one_o gospel_n but_o perhaps_o this_o one_o verse_n in_o a_o gospel_n this_o be_v eternal_a life_n to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n &_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v may_v be_v instruction_n sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o so_o arise_v proportionable_o to_o other_o circumstance_n in_o respect_n of_o other_o single_a person_n more_o truth_n and_o instruction_n be_v necessary_a and_o more_o yet_o to_o person_n enjoy_v sufficient_a mean_n to_o information_n to_o clergyman_n to_o congregation_n to_o well-ordered_a church_n beside_o if_o the_o same_o conclusion_n be_v consider_v in_o another_o sense_n without_o alter_v the_o expression_n a_o sense_n obvious_a enough_o &_o not_o improper_a in_o which_o among_o other_o ancient_a father_n s._n aug._n explain_v it_o as_o he_o be_v before_o quote_v cap._n 38._o viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n here_o as_o likewise_o the_o creed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v as_o join_v with_o the_o church_n authority_n to_o which_o say_v he_o we_o be_v express_o refer_v in_o scripture_n than_o it_o not_o only_o contain_v whatsoever_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o some_o qualify_v degree_n of_o necessity_n and_o to_o some_o certain_a person_n consider_v in_o some_o certain_a circumstance_n but_o likewise_o in_o the_o most_o exalt_a importance_n of_o the_o word_n necessary_a and_o to_o all_o person_n consider_v either_o as_o single_a or_o in_o actual_a communion_n etc._n etc._n last_o if_o the_o same_o conclusion_n be_v so_o understand_v that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v i_o do_v not_o say_v supply_v but_o even_o interpret_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a so_o many_o catholic_n will_v subscribe_v to_o it_o 3._o this_o conclusion_n therefore_o be_v so_o various_o applicable_a and_o by_o consequence_n capable_a of_o be_v orthodox_n or_o erroneous_a according_a to_o several_a application_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o be_v to_o reflect_v upon_o my_o present_a condition_n to_o try_v whether_o it_o befit_v i_o or_o no._n now_o for_o the_o present_a i_o be_v in_o quest_n of_o a_o church_n that_o church_n wherein_o i_o have_v be_v breed_v ere_o this_o time_n be_v almost_o ready_a to_o expire_v i_o live_v in_o a_o age_n wherein_o there_o be_v no_o want_n of_o mean_n of_o learning_n and_o instruction_n even_o to_o excess_n for_o the_o overmuch_a light_n make_v many_o man_n too_o too_o wanton_a and_o curious_a i_o have_v be_v breed_v after_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o i_o be_v capable_a in_o some_o reasonable_a degree_n not_o only_o of_o information_n but_o likewise_o of_o a_o ability_n to_o judge_v what_o instructor_n can_v approve_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o fit_a to_o be_v follow_v and_o believe_v and_o for_o that_o purpose_n i_o endeavour_v all_o i_o can_v to_o free_v my_o mimd_n from_o all_o prejudices_fw-la and_o partiality_n in_o these_o circumstance_n two_o party_n invite_v i_o to_o their_o communion_n and_o a_o communion_n some_o where_o or_o other_o i_o know_v be_v necessary_a the_o one_o say_v you_o may_v without_o inevitable_a danger_n perhaps_o take_v your_o choice_n of_o ei●her_n but_o certain_o your_o best_a and_o safe_a way_n be_v to_o come_v to_o we_o for_o we_o will_v propose_v to_o your_o belief_n nothing_o but_o the_o acknowledge_v write_v word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o have_v for_o this_o hundred_o year_n believe_v to_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a not_o only_o for_o your_o salvation_n but_o any_o man_n else_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v free_v from_o all_o visible_a authority_n interpret_n that_o word_n the_o spirit_n will_v teach_v you_o to_o interpret_v it_o as_o true_o as_o we_o do_v for_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v not_o suffer_v you_o in_o our_o communion_n the_o other_o party_n on_o the_o contrary_n protest_v aloud_o that_o if_o i_o join_v not_o with_o they_o i_o be_v utter_o lose_v that_o they_o will_v propose_v to_o i_o nothing_o but_o divine_a revelation_n contain_v not_o only_o in_o book_n write_v but_o tradition_n unwritten_a both_o convey_v by_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o with_o the_o same_o authority_n and_o therefore_o if_o either_o both_o to_o be_v receive_v that_o the_o former_a inviter_n be_v a_o new_a faction_n for_o worldly_a interest_n divide_v from_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o apparent_o from_o a_o church_n which_o have_v continue_v ever_o since_o christ_n time_n in_o a_o uninterrupted_n succession_n of_o instructer_n and_o doctrine_n of_o teacher_n appoint_v for_o guide_n not_o only_o by_o testimony_n of_o all_o age_n but_o likewise_o of_o the_o same_o scripture_n upon_o which_o their_o adversary_n pretend_v to_o ground_v their_o schism_n that_o these_o guide_n have_v continual_o preserve_v the_o church_n in_o a_o perfect_a unity_n of_o belief_n whereas_o the_o other_o party_n within_o one_o age_n that_o they_o have_v appear_v have_v be_v tear_v into_o near_o a_o hundred_o sect_n all_o of_o they_o with_o equally-no●_a justice_n pretend_v to_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o with_o the_o same_o rule_n fight_v with_o one_o another_o without_o the_o least_o effect_n of_o union_n not_o one_o controversy_n among_o they_o have_v be_v to_o this_o day_n clear_v 4._o in_o these_o circumstance_n come_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o this_o fundamental_a ground_n of_o protestantisme_n that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v all_o point_n of_o belief_n and_o practice_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n i_o find_v it_o necessary_a without_o any_o change_n make_v in_o the_o word_n to_o apply_v the_o term_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n not_o to_o one_o or_o more_o person_n ignorant_a destitute_a of_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n and_o in_o some_o particular_a unavoidable_a exigence_n but_o to_o myself_o consider_v in_o the_o condition_n before_o mention_v yea_o further_o to_o all_o christian_n in_o general_a and_o to_o the_o exigence_n of_o church_n well_o order_v and_o settle_v as_o on_o all_o side_n they_o pretend_v to_o be_v and_o have_v do_v thus_o i_o find_v that_o no_o antiquity_n ever_o deliver_v this_o conclusion_n in_o so_o large_a a_o sense_n yea_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o general_o all_o antiquity_n protest_v against_o it_o i_o find_v that_o no_o reason_n can_v require_v that_o write_n evident_o intend_v for_o sepciall_a use_n and_o confute_v three_o or_o four_o heresy_n shall_v be_v make_v use_n of_o or_o however_o shall_v be_v account_v sufficient_o and_o express_o convictive_a against_o opinion_n not_o name_v in_o they_o and_o not_o they_o thought_n upon_o by_o the_o author_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v entire_a systeme_n of_o christianity_n in_o a_o word_n i_o find_v that_o after_o i_o have_v apply_v this_o conclusion_n to_o the_o present_a use_n and_o hypothesis_n the_o argument_n and_o reason_n produce_v by_o mr._n chillingworth_n etc._n etc._n d●d_v not_o evince_v or_o conclude_v that_o which_o will_v give_v i_o in_o the_o case_n i_o be_v any_o satisfaction_n at_o all_o especial_o consider_v that_o if_o the_o protestant_n have_v gain_v the_o better_a in_o this_o particular_a concern_v a_o rule_n yet_o i_o shall_v be_v far_o from_o be_v at_o rest_n in_o their_o church_n unless_o they_o can_v further_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v all_o these_o thing_n so_o express_o and_o clear_o to_o all_o eye_n name_v those_o particular_a necessary_a doctrine_n in_o contradistinction_n to_o other_o unnecessary_a or_o but_o profitable_a or_o perhaps_o requisite_a only_o and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o person_n respective_o to_o who_o they_o be_v necessary_a and_o all_o this_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o no_o honest_a reasonable_a man_n can_v remain_v in_o doubt_n or_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o quarrel_v with_o other_o a_o thing_n which_o my_o own_o eye_n confu●ed_v since_o i_o apparent_o see_v earnest_a contention_n and_o separation_n about_o point_n not_o only_o by_o myself_o but_o by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n for_o above_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n together_o esteem_v necessary_a and_o since_o by_o my_o small_a read_n i_o have_v find_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o have_v not_o be_v question_v and_o contradict_v or_o unless_o they_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v no_o particular_a point_n at_o all_o necessary_a or_o last_o that_o there_o be_v some_o visible_a authority_n to_o decide_v unappealeable_o what_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o it_o what_o be_v only_o true_a what_o useful_a what_o requisite_a and_o what_o necessary_a but_o these_o be_v condition_n such_o as_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v not_o confidence_n enough_o to_o promise_v the_o former_a and_o they_o be_v too_o proud_a and_o confident_a of_o themselves_o to_o allow_v the_o
xix_o passage_n out_o of_o father_n concern_v the_o church_n authority_n 1._o but_o i_o will_v no_o long_o defer_v the_o testimony_n which_o antiquity_n afford_v to_o the_o three_o proposition_n contain_v in_o the_o second_o conclusion_n foremention_v viz._n of_o the_o church_n authority_n to_o intepret_v scripture_n and_o define_v controversy_n i_o confess_v i_o may_v have_v content_v myself_o consider_v the_o superabundance_n to_o omit_v single_a passage_n when_o so_o many_o father_n have_v write_v whole_a book_n to_o witness_v it_o as_o tertullian_n s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n s._n vercentius_n lirinensis_n etc._n etc._n mention_v before_o and_o whereas_o all_o counsel_n in_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v determine_v have_v virtual_o determine_v this_o otherwise_o their_o determination_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v any_o thing_n else_o but_o determination_n notwithstanding_o i_o will_v not_o refuse_v the_o trouble_n of_o select_v a_o few_o passage_n more_o express_o declare_v what_o at_o large_a most_o of_o the_o book_n wherein_o they_o be_v find_v endeavour_v general_o to_o prove_v whether_o logical_o and_o rational_o or_o no_o let_v the_o world_n judge_n i_o be_o sure_a they_o prove_v it_o so_o effectual_o that_o they_o have_v thereby_o utter_o destroy_v the_o heresy_n that_o oppose_v they_o let_v the_o first_o witness_n therefore_o be_v s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o c._n 4._o where_o the_o church_n be_v there_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o where_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v there_o be_v the_o church_n and_o all_o grace_n the_o same_o father_n again_o lib._n 4._o c._n 43._o we_o must_v obey_v those_o priest_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n those_o that_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o together_o with_o episcopal_a power_n have_v according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n receive_v the_o certain_a gift_n of_o truth_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n who_o depart_v from_o the_o original_a succession_n wheresoever_o they_o be_v assemble_v to_o have_v suspect_v either_o as_o haeretique_n or_o schismatic_n or_o hypocrite_n and_o all_o these_o do_v fall_v from_o the_o truth_n again_o lib_n 4._o c._n 62._o the_o spiritual_a man_n shall_v judge_v they_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n shall_v be_v under_o no_o man_n judgement_n for_o to_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n be_v know_v in_o which_o be_v perfect_a faith_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n and_o firm_a knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v all_o truth_n again_o l._n 5._o c._n 4._o what_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v scripture_n ought_v we_o not_o to_o have_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o deliver_v to_o those_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v the_o church_n to_o which_o order_n many_o yield_v assent_v who_o believe_v in_o christ_n have_v salvation_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n without_o letter_n or_o ink_n and_o diligent_o keep_v ancient_a tradition_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o receive_v the_o truth_n from_o god_n church_n see_v the_o apostle_n have_v most_o full_o deposit_v in_o she_o as_o in_o a_o rich_a storehouse_n all_o thing_n belong_v to_o truth_n for_o what_o if_o there_o shall_v arise_v any_o contention_n of_o some_o small_a question_n ought_v we_o not_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n and_o from_o they_o to_o receive_v what_o be_v certain_a and_o clear_a concern_v the_o present_a question_n 3._o witness_v tert._n the_o preser_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n neither_o be_v the_o controversy_n to_o be_v settle_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o which_o there_o will_v be_v either_o no_o victory_n at_o all_o or_o very_o uncertain_a etc._n etc._n again_o order_n do_v require_v that_o that_o shall_v be_v propose_v in_o the_o first_o place_n which_o ought_v now_o to_o be_v only_o debate_v viz._n which_o of_o the_o party_n be_v possess_v of_o that_o faith_n to_o which_o the_o scripture_n agree_v from_o who_o and_o by_o who_o and_o when_o and_o to_o who_o that_o discipline_n be_v deliver_v by_o which_o man_n be_v name_v christian_n for_o wheresoever_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o christian_a discipline_n or_o faith_n be_v there_o will_v also_o be_v find_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n and_o exposition_n and_o all_o christian_a tradition_n witness_v origen_n since_o there_o be_v many_o who_o think_v they_o believe_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o some_o be_v of_o different_a opinion_n from_o those_o who_o go_v before_o they_o let_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v keep_v which_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o order_n of_o succession_n and_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n to_o this_o very_a day_n that_o only_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o truth_n which_o in_o nothing_o disagree_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o in_o our_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n nor_o believe_v otherwise_o then_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v to_o we_o 4._o witness_v s._n cyprian_a de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl._n there_o be_v one_o head_n &_o one_o source_n &_o one_o mother_n by_o the_o issue_n of_o her_o fruitfulness_n copious_a by_o her_o increase_n we_o be_v bear_v we_o be_v nourish_v with_o her_o milk_n with_o her_o spirit_n we_o be_v quicken_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v defile_v with_o adultery_n she_o be_v pure_a and_o chaste_a she_o know_v one_o house_n and_o with_o chaste_a bashfulness_n keep_v the_o sanctity_n of_o one_o bed_n this_o preserve_v we_o in_o god_n this_o advance_v to_o the_o kingdom_n the_o child_n that_o she_o have_v bring_v forth_o whosoever_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n and_o cleave_v to_o the_o adultress_n he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v have_v god_n to_o his_o father_n that_o have_v not_o the_o church_n to_o his_o mother_n witness_v lactantius_n l._n 4._o c._n ult_n it_o be_v only_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o have_v the_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o truth_n the_o dwelling-place_n of_o faith_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n into_o which_o whosever_v enter_v not_o and_o from_o which_o whosoever_o depart_v be_v without_o all_o hope_n of_o life_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n witness_v s._n basile_n and_o s._n gregory_n naz._n who_o as_o ruffinus_n hist._n eccl._n l._n 2._o c._n 29._o relate_v take_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n not_o of_o their_o own_o sense_n but_o from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n witness_v s._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n lat_fw-la 18._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v spread_v over_o the_o universal_a world_n from_o one_o end_n to_o the_o other_o and_o because_o it_o teach_v catholique_o and_o entire_o all_o doctrine_n which_o be_v to_o be_v know_v witness_v s._n ambrose_n faith_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o peter_n but_o of_o his_o faith_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v his_o confession_n overcome_v hell_n and_o this_o confession_n exclude_v many_o heresy_n for_o see_v the_o church_n like_o a_o good_a ship_n be_v beat_v upon_o by_o many_o wave_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n must_v prevail_v against_o all_o heresy_n l._n the_o incarn_n d●●_n 5._o witness_v dom._n in_o psalm_n 37._o in_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n resid_n whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o speak_v false_a thing_n again_o ep._n 54._o the_o height_n of_o all_o authority_n &_o all_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o reparation_n and_o reformation_n of_o mankind_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o save_a name_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o only_a church_n again_o ep._n 56_o the_o supreme_a emperor_n of_o our_o faith_n have_v fortify_v his_o church_n with_o the_o citadel_n of_o authority_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o a_o few_o person_n pious_o learn_v have_v arm_v it_o with_o copious_a provision_n of_o unconquerable_a reason_n that_o therefore_o to_o he_o be_v the_o most_o right_a discipline_n that_o especial_o the_o weak_a shall_v retire_v into_o this_o citadel_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n that_o for_o their_o defence_n be_v place_v most_o secure_o other_o shall_v combat_v with_o most_o strong_a reason_n again_o the_o util_a cred._n c._n 16_o if_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n do_v not_o precide_v over_o humane_a affair_n no_o care_n be_v to_o be_v have_v concern_v religion_n but_o if_o the_o several_a variety_n of_o creature_n which_o ought_v be_v believe_v to_o have_v flow_v from_o some_o fountain_n of_o most_o perfect_a beauty_n and_o by_o certain_a inward_a instinct_n do_v exhort_v both_o public_o and_o private_o those_o
who_o be_v natural_o better_o dispose_v attest_v that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v and_o worship_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o despair_v but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o authority_n place_v by_o the_o same_o god_n upon_o which_o we_o raise_v and_o settle_v ourselves_o as_o upon_o a_o most_o firm_a basis_n may_v be_v exalt_v up_o unto_o god_n again_o this_o be_v the_o providence_n of_o true_a religion_n this_o be_v command_v we_o from_o heaven_n this_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o our_o bless_a ancestor_n this_o be_v preserve_v even_o to_o these_o our_o time_n to_o be_v willing_a to_o disturb_v and_o pervert_v this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o seek_v a_o sacrilegious_a way_n to_o true_a religion_n again_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl_n c._n 19_o neither_o thou_o nor_o i_o do_v read_v this_o evident_o and_o express_o viz_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o if_o there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o world_n any_o one_o endow_v with_o wisdom_n and_o recommend_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o if_o such_o a_o one_o be_v consult_v with_o by_o we_o touch_v this_o controversy_n we_o shall_v in_o no_o wise_a doubt_n to_o observe_v whatsoever_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v say_v unto_o we_o and_o this_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v judge_v to_o have_v oppose_v not_o so_o much_o such_o a_o person_n as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o by_o who_o testimony_n such_o a_o one_o be_v recommend_v now_o christ_n give_v testimony_n to_o his_o church_n again_o the_o bap._n l._n 5._o c._n 23._o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n the_o apostle_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o concern_v this_o but_o this_o custom_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v take_v its_o original_n from_o their_o tradition_n as_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o universal_a church_n observe_v the_o which_o in_o good_a right_a aught_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n although_o they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n again_o lib._n 4._o that_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n hold_v and_o it_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o counsel_n but_o have_v be_v always_o retain_v and_o observe_v be_v most_o just_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v no_o other_o way_n than_o by_o apostolic_a tradition_n etc._n etc._n we_o must_v observe_v in_o these_o thing_n that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n observe_v the_o question_n therefore_o between_o you_o and_o we_o be_v whether_o of_o the_o two_o you_o or_o we_o be_v the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o to_o omit_v therefore_o this_o sincere_a wisdom_n which_o you_o will_v not_o allow_v to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v many_o other_o thing_n which_o most_o just_o keep_v i_o in_o her_o bosom_n the_o consent_n of_o peoples_n and_o nation_n keep_v i_o there_o the_o authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n augment_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n keep_v i_o there_o the_o succession_n of_o prelate_n ever_o since_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n to_o who_o our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n commit_v the_o feed_n of_o his_o sheep_n to_o this_o present_a episcopate_n keep_v i_o there_o and_o final_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a keep_v i_o there_o the_o which_o name_n this_o church_n alone_a not_o without_o cause_n have_v retain_v among_o so_o many_o and_o great_a heresy_n insomuch_o as_o when_o any_o stranger_n demand_v where_o the_o assembly_n be_v wherein_o a_o man_n may_v communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o heretic_n have_v the_o boldness_n to_o show_v he_o his_o temple_n or_o house_n etc._n etc._n these_o so_o many_o and_o so_o strong_a and_o most_o dear_a tie_n of_o the_o christian_a name_n with_o good_a right_n retain_v a_o believer_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o slowness_n of_o our_o understanding_n or_o want_v of_o merit_n in_o our_o life_n the_o truth_n do_v not_o as_o yet_o show_v itself_o unto_o we_o with_o perfect_a evidence_n again_o the_o same_o father_n in_o the_o same_o book_n ca._n 5._o i_o do_v not_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o manichaeus_n be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n i_o pray_v you_o be_v not_o angry_a neither_o begin_v to_o give_v ill_a language_n for_o you_o know_v that_o i_o have_v resolve_v not_o to_o believe_v rash_o any_o thing_n produce_v by_o you_o i_o ask_v therefore_o who_o be_v this_o manichaeus_n you_o will_v answer_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ._n i_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o now_o thou_o will_v find_v nothing_o what_o thou_o shall_v say_v or_o do_v for_o thou_o do_v promise_v i_o a_o science_n of_o truth_n and_o now_o thou_o force_v i_o to_o believe_v a_o thing_n that_o i_o know_v not_o it_o may_v be_v thou_o will_v read_v the_o gospel_n unto_o i_o and_o from_o thence_o will_v endeavour_v to_o assert_v the_o person_n of_o manichaeus_n but_o what_o if_o thou_o shall_v light_v upon_o one_o that_o do_v not_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n what_o will_v thou_o do_v to_o he_o when_o he_o tell_v thou_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v and_o true_o i_o myself_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n move_v i_o now_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o believe_v the_o same_o person_n say_v to_o i_o believe_v not_o manichaeus_n to_o who_o i_o give_v credence_n say_v believe_v the_o gospel_n choose_v what_o thou_o will_v if_o thou_o shall_v say_v believe_v the_o catholic_n they_o move_v i_o to_o give_v no_o credence_n to_o you_o therefore_o if_o i_o believe_v they_o i_o must_v of_o necessity_n not_o believe_v thou_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v do_v not_o believe_v catholic_n thou_o shall_v do_v unjust_o compel_v i_o by_o the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v manicheus_fw-la because_o the_o same_o gospel_n i_o believe_v upon_o the_o ●reaching_n of_o catholic_n but_o if_o thou_o 〈◊〉_d say_v thou_o do_v well_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n upon_o the_o commendation_n of_o catholic_n but_o ill_o in_o believe_v they_o discommend_v manichaeus_n do_v thou_o think_v i_o so_o very_a a_o fool_n as_o that_o without_o any_o reason_n render_v i_o shall_v believe_v what_o thou_o please_v and_o disbelieve_v what_o thou_o like_v not_o so_o that_o sure_o i_o do_v much_o more_o just_o and_o wary_o if_o because_o i_o be_o already_o a_o believer_n i_o do_v not_o forsake_v the_o catholic_n to_o come_v over_o to_o thy_o party_n unless_o thou_o command_v i_o not_o to_o believe_v but_o undertake_v to_o show_v i_o something_o that_o may_v be_v know_v most_o manifest_o and_o apparent_o therefore_o if_o thou_o will_v afford_v i_o reason_n quit_v the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o hold_v thyself_o to_o the_o gospel_n i_o must_v hold_v myself_o to_o those_o upon_o who_o command_n i_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o person_n commandment_n i_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n believe_v thou_o but_o if_o by_o chance_n thou_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o find_v in_o the_o gospel_n some_o passage_n most_o evident_a concern_v the_o apostleship_n of_o manicha●●_n thou_o will_v thereby_o weaken_v indeed_o unto_o i_o the_o authority_n of_o catholic_n who_o command_v i_o not_o to_o believe_v thou_o which_o authority_n be_v invalidate_v i_o will_v no_o long_o believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o because_o it_o be_v for_o their_o sake_n that_o i_o believe_v it_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v allege_v will_v have_v no_o force_n with_o i_o to_o the_o same_o purpole_n the_o same_o father_n lib._n the_o util_a cred_a c._n 14._o why_o shall_v i_o not_o most_o diligent_o inquire_v what_o christ_n command_v of_o they_o before_o all_o ●●hers_n by_o who_o authority_n i_o be_v move_v to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n command_v any_o good_a thing_n can_v thou_o better_v declare_v to_o i_o what_o he_o say_v who_o i_o will_v not_o have_v think_v to_o have_v be_v or_o to_o be_v if_o the_o belief_n thereof_o have_v be_v recommend_v by_o thou_o to_o i_o this_o therefore_o i_o believe_v by_o fame_n strengthen_v with_o celebrity_n consent_n antiquity_n but_o every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o you_o so_o few_o so_o turbulent_a so_o new_a can_v produce_v nothing_o deserve_v authority_n what_o madness_n be_v this_o believe_v they_o catholic_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v christ_n but_o learn_v of_o we_o what_o christ_n say_v why_o i_o beseech_v thou_o sure_o if_o they_o catholic_n be_v not_o at_o all_o and_o can_v not_o teach_v i_o any_o thing_n i_o will_v more_o easy_o persuade_v myself_o that_o i_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v christ_n then_o that_o i_o shall_v learn_v any_o thing_n concern_v he_o from_o any_o other_o than_o they_o by_o who_o i_o believe_v in_o he_o last_o the_o same_o father_n con_v cres._n i._n 1._o c._n 33._o although_o say_v he_o there_o can_v be_v produce_v out_o of_o the_o
scripture_n any_o example_n of_o such_o a_o thing_n yet_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v hold_v of_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o please_v the_o whole_a church_n the_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n do_v commend_v that_o because_o the_o holy_a scripture_n can_v deceive_v we_o whosoever_o fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v with_o the_o obscurity_n of_o this_o question_n let_v he_o require_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o any_o ambiguity_n do_v demonstrate_v to_o the_o end_n that_o because_o the_o scripture_n can_v deceive_v we_o whoseover_o be_v afraid_a to_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o obscurity_n of_o any_o question_n may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n judgement_n concern_v it_o the_o which_o church_n the_o holy_a scripture_n demonstrate_v without_o any_o ambiguity_n 6._o witness_v s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n c._n 2._o inasmuch_o as_o all_o do_v not_o take_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o profundity_n but_o some_o on_o one_o fashion_n some_o on_o another_o so_o that_o almost_o as_o many_o sense_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v draw_v from_o it_o as_o there_o be_v man_n for_o novatianus_n expound_v it_o one_o way_n photinus_n another_o sabellius_n another_o donatus_n another_o arius_n eunomius_n macedonius_n another_o apollinarius_n and_o priscillian_n another_o jovinian_a pelagius_n caelestius_n another_o and_o last_o nestorius_n another_o for_o this_o reason_n to_o avoid_v the_o labyrinth_n of_o so_o many_o contrary_a error_n it_o be_v very_o necessary_a that_o the_o line_n of_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a conception_n shall_v be_v draw_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o catholic_a sense_n or_o intelligence_n witness_v last_o s._n leo_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o all_o christian_a observance_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o church_n into_o the_o custom_n of_o devotion_n do_v come_v from_o apostolical_a tradition_n &_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v also_o now_o preside_v over_o his_o own_o institute_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o all_o both_o obedient_o observe_v and_o wise_o understand_v they_o serm._n 2._o de_fw-fr jeiun_n pent._n chap._n xx._n quotation_n out_o of_o antiquity_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n a_o contrary_a character_n of_o heretic_n 1._o to_o the_o former_a quotation_n so_o express_v so_o efficacious_a to_o assert_v the_o church_n authority_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n from_o which_o there_o lie_v no_o appeal_n i_o will_v adjoyne_v other_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n to_o demonstrate_v the_o veneration_n give_v by_o all_o orthodox_n father_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o church_n their_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o oblige_a authority_n and_o how_o in_o obedience_n to_o they_o they_o submit_v their_o own_o particular_a opinion_n witness_v hereof_o may_v be_v either_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolic_a father_n at_o least_o in_o those_o most_o ancient_a canon_n whereto_o saint_n clement_n also_o give_v testimony_n who_o appoint_v that_o bishop_n shall_v twice_o in_o the_o year_n keep_v counsel_n 30._o and_o among_o themselves_o examine_v the_o decree_n of_o religion_n and_o compose_v such_o ecclesiastical_a controversy_n as_o shall_v arise_v the_o first_o in_o the_o four_o week_n after_o pentecost_n and_o the_o second_o on_o the_o twelve_o day_n of_o hyperberitaei_n octob._n witness_v s._n ignatius_n ep._n ad_fw-la smyrn_n do_v you_o all_o follow_v the_o bishop_n as_o christ_n do_v his_o father_n without_o the_o bishop_n let_v no_o man_n praesume_v to_o do_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n the_o same_o holy_a father_n ep._n ad_fw-la policarp_n testify_v that_o it_o be_v the_o order_n in_o his_o time_n that_o synod_n and_o assembly_n of_o bishhop_n be_v frequent_o celebrate_v witness_v tertullian_n cont_n psych_n cap._n 13._o in_o those_o country_n of_o greece_n there_o be_v assemble_v in_o certain_a appoint_a place_n counsel_n out_o of_o all_o church_n by_o which_o both_o thing_n of_o high_a importance_n be_v agitate_a in_o common_a and_o the_o representation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a name_n be_v celebrate_v with_o great_a veneration_n witness_v that_o glorious_a emperor_n constantine_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n mention_v by_o socrates_n hist._n eccl_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o where_o he_o say_v whatsoever_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o bishop_n that_o be_v universal_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o divine_a will._n witness_v s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n ep._n ad_fw-la chelid_n those_o that_o agree_v with_o apollinard_n say_v that_o they_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n or_o roman_a bishop_n by_o who_o it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v once_o condemn_v let_v they_o show_v this_o and_o we_o will_v yield_v for_o than_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o assent_n to_o the_o true_a doctrine_n for_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o witness_v s._n ambrose_n the_o fid._n ad_fw-la grat._n lib._n 3._o c_o 7._o who_o call_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a haereditari●_n signacula_fw-la not_o to_o be_v violate_v by_o the_o rash_a boldness_n of_o any_o man_n and_o many_o expression_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n be_v extant_a in_o s._n hilary_n in_o his_o book_n address_v to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n 2_o witness_v s._n augustin_n con_v don._n lib._n 7._o &_o con_fw-mi crescon_n lib._n 1._o it_o be_v to_o we_o a_o safe_a thing_n not_o to_o rush_v forward_o in_o any_o rashness_n of_o opinion_n concern_v those_o thing_n which_o neither_o have_v be_v agitate_a in_o any_o catholique-national-synod_n nor_o determine_v in_o any_o occumenicall_a but_o to_o maintain_v that_o with_o the_o assurance_n of_o a_o secure_a voice_n which_o in_o the_o government_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v be_v strengthen_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o again_o in_o the_o former_a age_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o schism_n of_o donatus_n id._n de_fw-la bapt._n con_v don._n i._n 1._o the_o obscurity_n of_o that_o question_n viz_o concern_v rebaptisation_n of_o haeretique_n compel_v great_a person_n and_o endue_v with_o great_a charity_n to_o dispute_v and_o debate_n among_o themselves_o however_o without_o any_o breach_n of_o peace_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o several_a country_n for_o a_o long_a time_n the_o decision_n of_o several_a counsel_n do_v vary_v and_o clash_v among_o themselves_o until_o in_o a_o plenary_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o which_o be_v sound_o believe_v be_v without_o all_o manner_n of_o doubt_n confirm_v again_o id._n con_v parm_n ep._n lib._n 2_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o baptism_n can_v be_v give_v by_o those_o man_n also_o who_o never_o have_v be_v christian_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o affirm_v determinate_o any_o thing_n therein_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n so_o great_a as_o may_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o matter_n but_o concern_v those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o question_n at_o all_o but_o that_o they_o do_v both_o retain_v it_o and_o communicate_v it_o and_o that_o they_o do_v both_o pernicious_o retain_v and_o pernicious_o communicate_v it_o without_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n for_o this_o have_v be_v already_o agitate_a consider_v perfect_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o id._n de_fw-la bapt._n con_v don._n lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o neither_o dare_v we_o affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n if_o we_o be_v not_o well_o ground_v upon_o the_o most_o uniform_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n unto_o which_o undoubted_o s._n cyprian_n will_v have_v yield_v if_o in_o his_o time_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o question_n have_v be_v discuss_v and_o declare_v and_o by_o a_o general_n council_n establish_v last_o to_o omit_v many_o express_a testimony_n of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n facundus_n etc._n etc._n the_o last_o witness_n shall_v be_v s._n gregory_n the_o great_a ep._n 24._o who_o profess_v that_o he_o receive_v and_o venerate_v the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n no_o otherwise_o then_o the_o four_o gospel_n as_o likewise_o that_o he_o do_v in_o like_a manner_n embrace_v the_o five_o council_n this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o the_o catholic_a father_n when_o they_o write_v many_o of_o they_o purposely_o upon_o this_o very_a question_n and_o beside_o these_o testimony_n other_o will_v be_v produce_v occasional_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n 3._o on_o the_o contrary_a haeritique_n as_o s._n basile_n observe_v do_v general_o agree_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o raise_v a_o altar_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o
return_v that_o shall_v return_v which_o be_v before_o again_o mat._n 6._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o again_o joh._n 14._o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v remain_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o and_o again_o let_v both_o grow_v together_o unto_o the_o harvest_n and_o again_o mat._n 18._o if_o any_o man_n will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n upon_o which_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr bapt._n thus_o descant_v the_o which_o house_n likewise_o have_v receive_v the_o key_n and_o a_o power_n of_o lose_v and_o bind_v whosoever_o shall_v contemn_v this_o house_n reprove_v and_o correct_v he_o let_v he_o say_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n and_o last_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 4._o chap._n xxviii_o the_o validity_n of_o such_o text_n etc._n etc._n 1._o upon_o these_o and_o other_o such_o text_n of_o scripture_n join_v with_o tradition_n and_o uninterrupted_a practice_n the_o ancient_a church_n ground_v upon_o her_o authority_n the_o ancient_a counsel_n their_o power_n of_o anathematise_v all_o gainsayers_a and_o the_o ancient_a father_n all_o their_o argument_n and_o discourse_n against_o all_o sort_n of_o heretic_n argue_v thus_o that_o if_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a that_o his_o church_n shall_v continue_v for_o ever_o and_o so_o continue_v as_o that_o she_o shall_v always_o be_v preserve_v in_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o she_o than_o whatsoever_o heretic_n oppose_v or_o schismatic_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o present_a church_n either_o give_v christ_n the_o lie_n or_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v a_o congregation_n exempt_v from_o these_o promise_n conclude_v that_o no_o pretence_n can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v any_o man_n at_o any_o time_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n to_o which_o such_o promise_n have_v be_v make_v hence_o that_o great_a alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n theod._n hist._n eccl._n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o we_o acknowledge_v one_o only_a church_n catholic_a and_o apostolic_a which_o as_o she_o can_v never_o be_v root_v out_o although_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v attempt_v to_o fight_v against_o she_o so_o she_o surmount_v and_o dissipate_v all_o the_o impious_a assault_n of_o heretic_n hence_o likewise_o s._n athanasius_n the_o church_n be_v invincible_a although_o hell_n itself_o shall_v oppose_v she_o hence_o last_o theophilus●_n god_n at_o all_o time_n afford_v the_o same_o grace_n unto_o his_o church_n namely_o that_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v preserve_v entire_a and_o that_o the_o poison_n of_o heretical_a doctrine_n shall_v have_v no_o power_n over_o she_o v._o s._n hierom._n ep._n 67._o 2._o now_o if_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o both_o infallible_a and_o likewise_o absolute_a and_o unless_o the_o church_n to_o which_o such_o promise_n belong_v be_v not_o only_o visible_a but_o by_o the_o weak_a understanding_n discernible_a from_o all_o other_o faction_n and_o congregation_n and_o last_o unless_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n that_o all_o the_o father_n take_v advantage_n from_o such_o promise_n to_o condemn_v all_o schism_n and_o heresy_n against_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o their_o time_n all_o succeed_a catholic_n might_n with_o as_o much_o reason_n and_o justice_n from_o the_o same_o promise_n conclude_v as_o efficatious_o against_o all_o follow_a heresy_n and_o schism_n whatsoever_o have_v be_v say_v by_o all_o these_o father_n especial_o the_o write_n of_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o donatist_n will_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o most_o foolish_a impertinent_a juggle_a discourse_n that_o ever_o be_v yea_o that_o be_v too_o mild_a a_o censure_n i_o shall_v say_v the_o most_o blasphemous_a and_o pernicious_a to_o christianity_n for_o by_o ascribe_v to_o the_o present_a church_n respective_o such_o sanctity_n authority_n and_o indefectibility_n if_o such_o title_n can_v not_o be_v warrant_v from_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n all_o possible_a mean_n of_o take_v away_o scandal_n and_o error_n among_o christian_n will_v be_v utter_o lose_v it_o will_v be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o preach_v truth_n and_o piety_n or_o reform_v vice_n in_o a_o word_n that_o fearful_a comminatory_n curse_v in_o the_o revelation_n will_v be_v convert_v into_o a_o evangelicall_n precept_n qui_fw-la nocet_fw-la noceat_fw-la adhuc_fw-la &_o qui_fw-la in_o sordibus_fw-la est_fw-la sordescat_fw-la adhuc_fw-la let_v he_o that_o do_v mischief_n proceed_v to_o do_v more_o mischief_n still_o and_o let_v hi●_n that_o be_v filthy_a be_v filthy_a still_o apoc._n 22._o i_o may_v add_v et_fw-la qui_fw-la incredulous_fw-la est_fw-la incredulous_fw-la maneat_fw-la let_v he_o that_o be_v a_o disbeliever_n take_v care_n that_o he_o continue_v a_o disbeliever_n still_o for_o whosoever_o reform_v these_o thing_n be_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n 3._o but_o such_o promise_n be_v too_o express_v in_o scripture_n the_o tradition_n of_o they_o too_o constant_a and_o universal_a the_o father_n too_o good_a christian_n to_o leave_v any_o suspicion_n in_o man_n mind_n that_o they_o shall_v either_o light_o imprudent_o or_o wicked_o make_v use_n of_o argument_n to_o destroy_v heresy_n which_o in_o future_a time_n will_v be_v as_o proper_a yea_o far_o more_o efficacious_a to_o destroy_v truth_n therefore_o if_o all_o antiquity_n conspire_v to_o argue_v thus_o christ_n have_v express_o promise_v and_o foretell_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o city_n set_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o a_o hill_n and_o that_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n will_v be_v with_o this_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o which_o church_n notwithstanding_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o mixture_n of_o good_a and_o bad_a till_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o however_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n in_o you_o manichaean_n donatist_n pelagian_n etc._n etc._n to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v perish_v or_o invisible_a or_o a_o harlot_n till_o you_o revive_v reform_a and_o purify_v it_o i_o say_v if_o the_o father_n have_v reason_n from_o such_o promise_n to_o argue_v thus_o in_o the_o second_o three_o and_o four_o century_n their_o successor_n have_v as_o good_a reason_n to_o make_v the_o same_o deduction_n from_o the_o same_o principle_n in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o age_n and_o so_o downward_o till_o these_o very_a time_n for_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o so_o likewise_o be_v his_o promise_n and_o by_o consequence_n so_o likewise_o be_v his_o church_n since_o he_o have_v engage_v his_o omnipotence_n to_o make_v good_a such_o his_o promise_n to_o his_o church_n until_o the_o world_n end_n 4._o if_o not_o let_v those_o that_o forbid_v such_o a_o method_n of_o argue_v name_v how_o long_o a_o time_n and_o how_o far_o those_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v extend_v let_v they_o name_v the_o climacterical_a year_n when_o the_o effect_n of_o they_o be_v to_o cease_v or_o what_o constellation_n have_v overrule_v the_o operation_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n to_o conclude_v let_v they_o give_v some_o reason_n why_o the_o donatist_n who_o though_o in_o all_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o because_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o pretend_v misdemeanour_n of_o one_o bishop_n they_o separate_v from_o his_o communion_n and_o afterward_o from_o all_o those_o that_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v therefore_o so_o high_o condemn_v by_o the_o father_n for_o this_o their_o schism_n that_o they_o profess_v the_o same_o heaven_n can_v not_o hold_v they_o both_o yea_o that_o martyrdom_n itself_o can_v not_o blot_v out_o that_o crime_n what_o privilege_n can_v all_o those_o sect_n of_o this_o age_n allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o the_o same_o argument_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n shall_v not_o be_v apply_v to_o they_o who_o to_o their_o schism_n from_o charity_n have_v add_v a_o division_n from_o and_o contradiction_n to_o not_o only_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o all_o manner_n of_o congregation_n preaexistent_a in_o so_o many_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o faith_n of_o so_o high_a importance_n 5._o i_o confess_v i_o can_v not_o imagine_v what_o can_v be_v oppose_v to_o this_o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o but_o conclude_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n logic_n be_v conclude_v yea_o that_o such_o unanswerable_a argument_n of_o they_o be_v powerful_a mean_n preordain_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o accomplish_n of_o his_o good_a promise_n to_o his_o church_n inasmuch_o as_o by_o they_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o be_v as_o several_a father_n
not_o only_o to_o receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o she_o as_o a_o depositary_a of_o they_o but_o the_o true_a interpretation_n likewise_o of_o they_o preserve_v by_o she_o together_o with_o all_o other_o tradition_n as_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n this_o authority_n seem_v to_o be_v ground_v especial_o upon_o the_o promise_n of_o indefectibility_n a_o indefectibility_n i_o mean_v of_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o one_o body_n compose_v of_o part_n rule_v and_o obey_v teacher_n and_o person_n instruct_v as_o s._n paul_n describe_v the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n eph._n 4._o not_o as_o mr._n chillingworth_n who_o will_v make_v our_o saviour_n meaning_n to_o be_v no_o more_o but_o that_o till_o his_o second_o come_v his_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o utter_o root_v out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o somewhere_o or_o other_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o that_o shall_v profess_v it_o 2._o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o promise_n the_o church_n be_v assure_v 1._o not_o to_o be_v deprive_v neither_o of_o any_o necessary_a truth_n nor_o of_o lawful_a pastor_n to_o teach_v those_o necessary_a truth_n when_o i_o say_v necessary_a i_o mean_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o every_o single_a person_n consider_v in_o any_o circumstance_n exigence_n or_o extremity_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n and_o doctor_n potter_n etc._n etc._n through_o their_o whole_a book_n understand_v it_o whether_o mistake_v their_o adversary_n or_o no_o i_o think_v it_o unnecessary_a to_o trouble_v myself_o to_o examine_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o remain_v untouched_a though_o all_o the_o inference_n which_o they_o will_v make_v from_o such_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n necessary_a be_v allow_v they_o but_o i_o mean_a truth_n necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o glorious_a visible_a church_n which_o must_v be_v furnish_v with_o a_o world_n of_o doctrine_n and_o order_n which_o to_o all_o single_a person_n be_v far_o from_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v or_o know_v much_o less_o to_o person_n want_v ability_n or_o mean_n or_o time_n to_o be_v instruct_v 2._o she_o be_v secure_v from_o schism_n or_o heresy_n for_o remain_v to_o the_o world_n end_n one_o holy_a catholic_a church_n as_o we_o profess_v in_o the_o creed_n how_o can_v she_o be_v divide_v from_o herself_o either_o in_o faith_n or_o charity_n for_o unless_o all_o bishop_n in_o counsel_n ecumenical_a and_o indeed_o all_o christian_n shall_v conspire_v to_o renounce_v that_o truth_n to_o day_n which_o they_o believe_v yesterday_o how_o can_v novelty_n or_o heresy_n enter_v universal_o into_o the_o church_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o tradition_n 3._o concern_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o authority_n the_o principal_a subject_n be_v indeed_o the_o governor_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n with_o who_o christ_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o adequate_a subject_n be_v all_o catholic_a christian_n as_o well_o instructer_n as_o instruct_v since_o tradition_n be_v continue_v by_o they_o both_o shine_v in_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v and_o receive_v in_o devotion_n exercise_v and_o in_o outward_a practice_n and_o ceremony_n celebrate_v by_o all_o christian_n 4_o now_o of_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v general_o speak_v two_o act_n 1._o a_o obligation_n lie_v upon_o all_o christian_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o those_o practice_n necessary_o to_o be_v conform_v to_o which_o be_v teach_v and_o receive_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o this_o upon_o penalty_n of_o be_v account_v heretic_n that_o be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o by_o consequence_n divide_v from_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o inspire_v life_n into_o it_o here_o and_o will_v glorify_v it_o hereafter_o 2._o a_o coërzion_n or_o infliction_n of_o spiritual_a penalty_n and_o censure_n as_o suspension_n deprivation_n excommunication_n etc._n etc._n on_o those_o that_o persist_v stubborn_o in_o oppose_v those_o truth_n and_o practice_n and_o this_o belong_v to_o the_o teacher_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n more_o or_o less_o according_a to_o their_o several_a quality_n for_o every_o parish_n priest_n have_v some_o degree_n of_o this_o coercive_a power_n over_o his_o stock_n every_o bishop_n over_o both_o priest_n and_o several_a congregation_n within_o his_o diocese_n have_v more_o every_o metropolitan_a a_o yet_o large_a power_n a_o provincial_n synod_n above_o a_o single_a bishop_n or_o metropolitan_a etc._n etc._n and_o in_o conclusion_n the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a tribunal_n be_v a_o synod_n occumenicall_a lawful_o call_v 33._o confirm_v and_o some_o add_v universal_o receive_v by_o all_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v by_o their_o prelate_n from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o appeal_n for_o if_o there_o be_v all_o authority_n will_v be_v vain_a enjoy_v the_o name_n but_o without_o any_o effect_n or_o use_v at_o all_o as_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o 5._o concern_v the_o former_a act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n viz._n a_o obligation_n lie_v upon_o all_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o heresy_n to_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n antecedent_o to_o a_o general_a council_n appear_v by_o this_o namely_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n very_o many_o heresy_n take_v notice_n of_o acknowledge_v for_o such_o by_o all_o catholic_n and_o dissipate_v before_o any_o general_a council_n have_v be_v call_v as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n &_o s._n epiphanius_n will_v assure_v we_o and_o this_o be_v ground_v ●_o upon_o evident_a reason_n for_o what_o be_v heresy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o a_o relinquish_a of_o a_o former_a receive_v opinion_n or_o practice_n and_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o particular_a new_a one_o a_o act_v this_o be_v which_o imply_v a_o extreme_a contempt_n of_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o prefer_n one_o own_o single_a judgement_n or_o wilfulness_n before_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v prudent_a or_o sacred_a in_o the_o world_n 2_o upon_o express_a scripture_n for_o s._n paul_n command_v the_o thessalonian_n and_o s._n john_n all_o christian_n to_o abstain_v from_o the_o conversation_n of_o and_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o bid_v god_n speed_n to_o all_o disordinate_a walker_n swerve_v from_o the_o rule_n establish_v and_o all_o introducer_n of_o novelty_n in_o the_o church_n yea_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o a_o heretic_n even_o before_o the_o bishop_n censure_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d condemn_v by_o himself_o that_o be_v as_o several_a father_n expound_v it_o voluntary_o and_o by_o himself_o separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o faithful_a so_o that_o the_o solemn_a excommunication_n of_o the_o bishop_n against_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v only_o a_o ratify_n of_o that_o man_n censure_n against_o himself_o for_o i_o conceive_v it_o can_v hardly_o be_v affirm_v of_o all_o heretic_n in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d self-condemned_n that_o be_v profess_v and_o maintain_v error_n against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o knowledge_n 6._o now_o this_o authority_n reside_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o must_v add_v of_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n have_v be_v in_o all_o time_n preserve_v so_o inviolable_a that_o beside_o the_o forecited_n testimony_n of_o the_o father_n this_o observation_n will_v sufficient_o justify_v it_o viz._n that_o there_o be_v never_o in_o any_o age_n of_o the_o church_n as_o far_o as_o i_o have_v be_v able_a to_o inform_v myself_o any_o one_o single_a person_n esteem_v a_o catholic_a that_o ever_o either_o speak_v against_o or_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n censure_v or_o seem_v to_o render_v suspicious_a any_o doctrine_n or_o practice_v universal_o believe_v or_o receive_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n during_o the_o time_n that_o he_o live_v many_o father_n have_v be_v very_o bold_a and_o eager_a against_o abuse_n and_o error_n particular_a some_o of_o they_o perhaps_o too_o large_o disperse_v but_o never_o any_o of_o they_o whether_o private_a person_n or_o governor_n learned_a or_o unlearned_a tax_v the_o church_n either_o of_o error_n in_o doctrine_n or_o of_o superstition_n profaneness_n or_o any_o other_o enormity_n in_o practice_n many_o of_o they_o have_v earnest_o call_v for_o a_o free_a council_n to_o reform_v particular_a disorder_n and_o error_n in_o the_o life_n and_o write_n of_o both_o clergy_n and_o laity_n sometime_o not_o spare_v pope_n themselves_o but_o never_o to_o have_v the_o church_n itself_o to_o alter_v any_o of_o her_o doctrine_n or_o to_o change_v any_o of_o her_o practice_n
upon_o pretence_n that_o they_o be_v condemnable_a 7._o i_o know_v the_o several_a sectary_n of_o this_o present_a age_n be_v in_o this_o occasion_n always_o ready_a to_o object_v the_o only_a one_o unblamable_a action_n of_o that_o glorious_a father_n and_o martyr_n s._n cyprian_a i_o mean_v his_o contestation_n with_o the_o pope_n and_o opposition_n to_o the_o general_a apostolic_a tradition_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o non-rebaptization_a of_o heretic_n they_o neglect_v forget_v and_o by_o their_o practice_n condemn_v that_o most_o christian_a spirit_n of_o unity_n and_o charity_n which_o shine_v in_o he_o towards_o those_o that_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o this_o point_n and_o as_o if_o his_o error_n have_v be_v his_o only_a virtue_n acknowledge_v he_o only_o a_o example_n to_o be_v imitate_v in_o his_o fault_n not_o consider_v what_o probable_a excuse_n there_o be_v to_o qualify_v that_o single_a fault_n of_o he_o to_o which_o qualification_n they_o in_o none_o of_o their_o so_o many_o rebellion_n can_v pretend_v to_o as_o 1._o that_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n against_o he_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o he_o so_o evident_a but_o that_o he_o can_v allege_v example_n not_o only_o of_o the_o african_a church_n but_o several_a in_o the_o east_n likewise_o as_o cappadocia_n phrygia_n etc._n etc._n as_o he_o be_v inform_v by_o firmilianus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o he_o 2._o that_o he_o himself_o begin_v not_o this_o novelty_n but_o conld_v justify_v the_o tradition_n of_o it_o for_o several_a succession_n at_o least_o as_o high_a as_o the_o time_n of_o agrippinus_n one_o of_o his_o predecessor_n 3._o that_o no_o general_a council_n have_v determine_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o yea_o s._n augustine_n before_o quote_v confident_o profess_v that_o if_o s._n cyprian_n have_v survive_v to_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a he_o will_v no_o doubt_n have_v relinquish_v his_o opinion_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o council_n 8._o by_o this_o objection_n borrow_v from_o ancient_a heretic_n it_o appear_v that_o as_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v a_o tradition_n and_o succession_n of_o truth_n so_o in_o heresy_n likewise_o of_o error_n the_o latter_a heretic_n borrow_v from_o their_o predecessor_n though_o not_o predecessor_n in_o their_o particular_a opinion_n the_o same_o argument_n and_o pretence_n that_o former_o have_v be_v without_o success_n make_v use_v of_o against_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o zealous_a do_v such_o man_n show_v themselves_o to_o use_v all_o endeavour_n to_o renounce_v that_o precious_a legacy_n of_o unity_n and_o peace_n which_o our_o saviour_n ready_a to_o relinquish_v the_o world_n so_o tender_o bequeath_v to_o his_o church_n 9_o then_o for_o the_o second_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n viz_o a_o power_n coercive_a and_o judiciary_n reside_v in_o the_o church-governors_n respective_o and_o supreme_o in_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o convene_v approve_a and_o accept_v this_o authority_n the_o primitive_a time_n and_o all_o age_n ever_o since_o have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o institution_n and_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n mention_v express_o in_o scripture_n act._n 15._o &_o deliver_v likewise_o by_o universal_a tradition_n both_o oral_a and_o practical_a v_o g._n tell_v the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o &c._n &c._n and_o wheresoever_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n be_v gather_v together_o to_o consider_v about_o the_o matter_n viz._n in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n concern_v the_o controversy_n about_o moses_n his_o law_n &c_n &c_n 10._o and_o here_o likewise_o may_v be_v verify_v a_o like_a observation_n to_o the_o former_a viz._n that_o never_o any_o one_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n do_v ever_o censure_n much_o less_o contradict_v or_o disobey_v the_o decision_n order_n or_o decree_n of_o any_o legitimate_a council_n in_o their_o own_o or_o former_a time_n yea_o i_o think_v i_o may_v hereto_o add_v something_o to_o the_o utter_a shame_n and_o confusion_n of_o the_o contriver_n and_o propugnator_n of_o the_o late_a heresy_n and_o schism_n viz._n that_o though_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n after_o a_o council_n have_v condemn_v their_o opinion_n do_v indeed_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o their_o own_o condemnation_n yet●_n i_o think_v there_o can_v be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n the_o example_n of_o one_o heretic_n that_o ever_o begin_v to_o publish_v a_o heresy_n against_o any_o doctrine_n that_o have_v former_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o general_a council_n such_o a_o supereminent_a degree_n of_o rebellion_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v due_a and_o to_o be_v appropriate_v to_o luther_n calvin_n etc._n etc._n viz._n to_o tread_v under_o foot_n all_o kind_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n not_o only_o of_o the_o present_a but_o all_o former_a time_n likewise_o 11._o i_o shall_v defer_v the_o consideration_n how_o admirable_a and_o only_a effectual_a a_o mean_n of_o unity_n among_o christian_n be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o reverence_n of_o general_a counsel_n so_o unanimous_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a worthy_n father_n doctor_n and_o martyr_n insomuch_o as_o the_o more_o eminent_a in_o learning_n and_o sanctity_n that_o any_o of_o they_o have_v be_v the_o more_o earnest_a champion_n have_v they_o be_v of_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o the_o proper_a season_n to_o enlarge_v myself_o upon_o this_o subject_n will_v be_v when_o i_o have_v take_v into_o consideration_n the_o contradictory_n doctrine_n of_o protestant_n concern_v power_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o judge_a controversy_n chap._n xxxi_o authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n compare_v with_o that_o of_o the_o jewish_a 1._o before_o i_o leave_v this_o argument_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o the_o foundation_n thereof_o viz._n christ_n promise_n of_o indefectibility_n etc._n etc._n because_o objection_n against_o it_o be_v frequent_o take_v out_o of_o the_o old-testament_n namely_o from_o a_o comparison_n with_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o though_o it_o enjoy_v great_a promise_n do_v notwithstanding_o fall_v into_o a_o general_a corruption_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o manner_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o set_v down_o for_o what_o reason_n i_o rest_v satisfy_v that_o none_o of_o those_o argument_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o effect_n upon_o i_o to_o shake_v my_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o unalterable_o ground_v and_o so_o universal_o submit_v to_o 2._o the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o jewish_a church_n have_v not_o such_o promise_n of_o indefectibility_n and_o security_n from_o heresy_n as_o the_o christian_a church_n apparent_o have_v it_o be_v true_a the_o patriarch_n jacob_n prophesy_v that_o the_o sceptre_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o judah_n nor_o a_o lawgiver_n from_o between_o his_o knee_n till_o shiloh_n come_v but_o this_o promise_n i_o assure_v myself_o respect_v only_o the_o outward_a policy_n of_o the_o jewish_a nation_n which_o be_v to_o remain_v in_o a_o distinct_a government_n not_o swallow_v up_o by_o other_o government_n but_o open_o govern_v by_o its_o own_o law_n as_o a_o commonwealth_n plain_o distinguishable_a from_o other_o till_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n 2._o they_o be_v not_o furnish_v with_o those_o mean_n of_o prevent_v and_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n enjoy_v for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o i_o conceive_v that_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o moses_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o two_o respect_n first_o in_o the_o plain_a literal_a sense_n and_o so_o it_o differ_v not_o much_o from_o the_o law_n of_o other_o kingdom_n the_o end_n thereof_o be_v worldly_a happiness_n which_o be_v only_o in_o express_a word_n propose_v in_o that_o law_n second_o in_o a_o spiritual_a allegorical_a and_o typical_a sense_n and_o so_o it_o have_v immediate_a influence_n upon_o the_o conscience_n and_o inward_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o late_a sense_n be_v take_v notice_n of_o only_a by_o extraordinary_a person_n as_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n now_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o law_n in_o the_o literal_a outward_a sense_n and_o notion_n of_o it_o god_n leave_v sufficient_a authority_n in_o the_o priest_n and_o other_o magistrate_n threaten_v every_o one_o with_o death_n that_o oppose_v their_o sentence_n and_o decree_n and_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o any_o emergent_a difficulty_n god_n leave_v the_o sanedrim_n together_o with_o a_o succession_n of_o scribe_n from_o who_o lip_n the_o people_n be_v ordinary_o to_o seek_v knowledge_n insomuch_o as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o such_o scribe_n say_v they_o sit_v in_o moses_n his_o chair_n whatsoever_o they_o command_v you_o to_o observe_v observe_v and_o do_v it_o mat._n
the_o universal_a christian_a world_n ibid._n again_o the_o letter_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o national_n counsel_n and_o national_n counsel_n by_o plenary_a one_o and_o former_a plenary_a counsel_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o other_o that_o succeed_v and_o again_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o boldness_n to_o affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v it_o not_o that_o we_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o most_o unanimous_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n now_o i_o suppose_v their_o intention_n be_v not_o to_o refund_v all_o authority_n final_o upon_o the_o ignorant_a people_n but_o upon_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prelate_n admit_v and_o attest_v what_o be_v decree_v by_o a_o few_o in_o counsel_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o universal_a government_n of_o the_o church_n set_v their_o seal_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o virtual_o or_o by_o consequence_n in_o and_o with_o they_o all_o christian_n universal_o in_o their_o communion_n and_o under_o their_o charge_n by_o this_o mean_n indeed_o all_o possible_a objection_n will_v be_v take_v away_o and_o the_o decision_n of_o counsel_n will_v be_v the_o act_n not_o of_o ten_o bishop_n represent_v a_o hundred_o and_o perhaps_o give_v suffrage_n to_o doctrine_n never_o question_v or_o debate_v by_o they_o but_o of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n now_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a according_a to_o these_o author_n ground_n that_o there_o must_v be_v such_o a_o reception_n of_o conciliary_a act_n by_o particular_a p●●●●●s_n ●●prossely_o formal_o and_o direct_o it_o be_v sufficient_a ●hat_n it_o be_v do_v interpretative_o that_o be_v when_o such_o doctrine_n be_v know_v and_o permit_v to_o be_v publish_v ●emine_a reclamante_fw-la and_o till_o this_o be_v do_v shy_a they_o the_o council_n though_o in_o itself_o it_o be_v very_o legitimate_a and_o deserve_v the_o ●itle_n of_o oecumonicall_a yet_o it_o do_v not_o sufficient_o and_o evident_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o whereas_o a_o provincial_n council_n yea_o a_o private_a father_n or_o doctor_n opinion_n so_o receive_v have_v in_o it_o the_o virtue_n of_o a_o general_n council_n 4._o now_o this_o opinion_n maintain_v by_o such_o considerable_a learned_a catholic_n and_o not_o apparent_o contrary_a to_o any_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n though_o i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o subscribe_v to_o as_o undoubted_o true_a for_o my_o resolution_n always_o be_v not_o to_o engage_v myself_o in_o any_o private_a sect_n or_o topical_a opinion_n and_o least_o of_o all_o in_o such_o as_o appear_v to_o be_v exotic_a and_o suspicious_a notwithstanding_o i_o be_v very_o well_o content_v to_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v at_o least_o a_o allowable_a opinion_n for_o i_o find_v it_o of_o great_a convenience_n to_o myself_o to_o free_v i_o from_o many_o difficulty_n for_o thereby_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o entrench_v on_o the_o point_n of_o controversy_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n since_o they_o be_v all_o not_o only_o decide_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n but_o likewise_o actual_o assent_v to_o and_o embrace_v by_o all_o particular_a catholic_a church_n neither_o as_o matter_n of_o controversy_n do_v now_o stand_v be_v it_o necessary_a to_o require_v any_o more_o from_o protestant_n than_o what_o have_v be_v so_o both_o decide_v and_o receive_v 2._o hereby_o all_o the_o objection_n which_o protestant_n make_v from_o certain_a real_a or_o imaginary_a contradiction_n which_o may_v be_v find_v in_o decree_n of_o counsel_n about_o other_o point_v not_o now_o in_o controversy_n be_v apparent_o render_v ineffectual_a for_o if_o that_o be_v to_o be_v only_o necessary_o account_v a_o article_n of_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v actual_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v by_o catholic_n and_o since_o contradiction_n can_v be_v actual_o assent_v to_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o whatsoever_o decision_n of_o counsel_n may_v seem_v to_o oppose_v such_o article_n be_v not_o necessary_o to_o be_v account_v catholic_a doctrine_n and_o by_o consequence_n not_o obligatory_a 3._o that_o so_o much_o object_v speech_n of_o s._n augustine_n de_fw-la bapt._n dom._n l_o 2._o c._n 3._o viz._n the_o letter_n of_o bishop_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o national_n counsel_n and_o national_n counsel_n by_o plenary_a one_o and_o former_a plenary_a counsel_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o other_o that_o succeed_v though_o it_o be_v understand_v of_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o require_v such_o a_o sense_n because_o s._n augustine_n speak_v it_o upon_o occasion_n of_o rebaptisation_n yet_o make_v nothing_o against_o catholic_n who_o upon_o the_o forementioned_a ground_n and_o authority_n need_v account_n that_o only_o to_o be_v catholic_a doctaine_n which_o be_v actual_o embrace_v by_o catholic_n yea_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o that_o yet_o more_o bold_a speech_n of_o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la viz._n it_o may_v be_v observe_v by_o all_o experience_n that_o a_o universal_a council_n may_v fail_v cusan_fw-la concord_n l._n 2._o c._n 14._o 5._o but_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o several_a ground_n upon_o which_o i_o conceive_v stapleton_n determine_v this_o question_n with_o a_o great_a latitude_n and_o indulgence_n then_o most_o other_o writer_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v escape_v the_o censure_n of_o any_o be_v commend_v even_o by_o those_o who_o use_v much_o more_o rigour_n in_o it_o then_o he_o have_v do_v the_o first_o be_v that_o no_o doctrine_n can_v be_v call_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n reveal_v and_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n 2._o that_o these_o doctrine_n have_v be_v preserve_v and_o continue_v to_o these_o time_n by_o tradition_n that_o be_v not_o only_o in_o book_n approve_v and_o deliver_v traditional_o but_o rather_o in_o a_o oral_a practical_a tradition_n from_o one_o age_n to_o another_o for_o the_o church_n pretend_v not_o to_o any_o new_a immediate_a revelation_n though_o she_o enjoy_v a_o effectual_a assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n 3._o that_o there_o be_v a_o double_a obligation_n from_o decision_n of_o general_n counsel_n the_o first_o a_o obligation_n of_o christian_a belief_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o general_n counsel_n as_o of_o universal_a tradition_n the_o second_o only_o of_o canonical_a obedience_n to_o order_n and_o constitution_n for_o practice_n by_o which_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o these_o be_v enforce_v as_o from_o divine_a authority_n but_o only_o to_o submit_v to_o they_o as_o act_n of_o a_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a power_n however_o not_o to_o censure_v they_o as_o unjust_a much_o less_o to_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v they_o 4._o that_o many_o i_o may_v say_v most_o constitution_n of_o counsel_n in_o order_n to_o practice_v do_v yet_o virtual_o include_v some_o degree_n of_o belief_n as_o that_o of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n of_o the_o use_n of_o image_n in_o church_n and_o upon_o altar_n etc._n etc._n of_o residence_n of_o bishop_n of_o authorise_a translation_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o in_o such_o case_n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n give_v order_n that_o such_o practice_n shall_v follow_v but_o only_o that_o consider_v christ_n continual_a care_n over_o his_o church_n so_o clear_o promise_v neither_o these_o nor_o any_o other_o order_n universal_o establish_v and_o practise_v be_v destructive_a to_o any_o substantial_a doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o christianity_n and_o that_o the_o authority_n leave_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o church_n be_v so_o large_a and_o ample_a as_o that_o when_o she_o shall_v judge_v it_o fit_a consider_v the_o various_a disposition_n of_o succeed_a times●_n she_o may_v alter_v external_a practice_n and_o form_n not_o essential_a or●_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o christian_a religion_n even_o in_o the_o sacrament_n themselves_o as_o we_o see_v acknowledge_v in_o some_o case_n by_o all_o christian_a church_n as_o about_o the_o alter_n of_o the_o time_n and_o posture_n of_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n the_o triple_a immersion_n in_o baptism_n abstain_v from_o thing_n strangle_v and_o from_o blood_n etc._n etc._n 5._o that_o doctrine_n determine_v by_o national_n counsel_n lay_v no_o obligation_n at_o all_o upon_o any_o other_o church_n but_o only_o those_o who_o bishop_n meet_v together_o and_o all_o the_o obligation_n even_o of_o those_o christian_n who_o live_v within_o such_o province_n be_v only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o receive_v such_o decision_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a because_o one_o nation_n can_v be_v a_o competent_a judge_n of_o catholic_a tradition_n and_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v deliver_v that_o way_n 6._o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v not_o of_o
promise_n to_o his_o church_n so_o that_o the_o church_n even_o when_o she_o do_v upon_o supposition_n err_v yet_o she_o do_v not_o even_o then_o lead_v any_o man_n out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n or_o within_o the_o danger_n of_o hell_n gate_n see_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v infallible_a that_o his_o spirit_n shall_v conduct_v or_o rather_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o the_o belief_n and_o profession_n of_o all_o truth_n at_o least_o necessary_a and_o as_o for_o point_n supernumerary_a or_o unnecessary_a neither_o unwilfull_a ignorance_n nor_o unavoidable_a mistake_n shall_v be_v impute_v as_o sinful_a to_o any_o man_n 6._o to_o the_o second_o proof_n viz._n that_o if_o the_o promise_n of_o infallibility_n have_v be_v make_v to_o any_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n certain_o the_o scripture_n will_v have_v name_v that_o church_n and_o have_v direct_v all_o christian_n to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o she_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o so_o main_a importance_n i_o answer_v 1._o the_o inference_n be_v not_o at_o all_o conclude_a as_o i_o show_v before_o in_o the_o first_o conclusion_n 2._o the_o scripture_n have_v express_o mention_v such_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v either_o reason_n or_o catholic_a tradition_n interpret_n scripture_n we_o must_v at_o least_o apply_v those_o promise_n to_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o succession_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n unite_v under_o one_o head_n since_o no_o particular_a man_n or_o church_n consider_v only_o as_o a_o distinct_a member_n of_o the_o whole_a can_v pretend_v to_o these_o promise_n as_o peculiar_o applicable_a to_o themselves_o now_o this_o whole_a body_n be_v as_o apparent_a and_o distinguishable_a from_o particular_a sect_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o s._n gregory_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o church_n of_o one_o denomination_n since_o they_o frame_v all_o their_o argument_n and_o discourse_n from_o the_o apparent_a visibility_n of_o it_o and_o sure_o to_o any_o one_o that_o will_v not_o shut_v his_o eye_n will_v have_v appear_v as_o clear_v and_o demonstrable_a in_o luther_n time_n also_o 7._o to_o the_o three_o proof_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n viz._n that_o catholic_n build_v their_o assurance_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n only_o upon_o fallible_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n and_o mark_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v make_v the_o contrary_n appear_v in_o several_a place_n before_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o most_o firm_a unshaken_a foundation_n that_o reason_n can_v have_v viz._n universal_a tradition_n by_o which_o it_o be_v more_o effectual_o prove_v then_o any_o particular_a book_n of_o scripture_n have_v be_v 8._o to_o his_o last_o proof_n against_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o his_o two_o example_n wherein_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o have_v err_v universal_o in_o point_n pretend_v to_o be_v of_o tradition_n as_o namely_o about_o the_o give_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n to_o infant_n mention_v by_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millenaries_n by_o s._n justin_n martyr_n and_o s._n irenaeus_n for_o the_o first_o example_n i_o refer_v myself_o to_o the_o satisfactory_a answer_n give_v by_o cardinal_n perron_n to_o the_o same_o objection_n make_v by_o king_n james_n perr_n repl_n l._n 2._o ob_n 3._o c._n 11._o 2._o concern_v the_o other_o example_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millenaries_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v that_o s._n justin_n martyr_n dial_n cum_fw-la trypho_n say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v a_o catholic_a tradition_n nor_o receive_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o of_o himself_o and_o many_o other_o christian_n but_o withal_o that_o there_o be_v many_o also_o who_o be_v of_o a_o pure_a and_o pious_a christian_a belief_n which_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o when_o all_o that_o can_v be_v allege_v to_o prove_v that_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v a_o apostolic_a tradition_n be_v say_v the_o proof_n end_v upon_o the_o report_n of_o papias_n a_o very_a credulous_a man_n one_o that_o love_v to_o tell_v story_n many_o of_o which_o can_v not_o find_v belief_n in_o the_o church_n a_o man_n mean_o learn_v and_o by_o consequence_n one_o that_o may_v very_o probable_o mistake_v what_o he_o say_v s._n john_n tell_v he_o concern_v that_o point_n chap._n xlii_o a_o answer_n to_o mr._n chillingworth_n objection_n of_o circle_n and_o absurdity_n to_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n of_o catholic_n 1._o a_o three_o rank_n of_o argument_n with_o which_o mr._n chillingworth_n combat_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o absurdity_n meander_n and_o circle_n which_o he_o say_v most_o unavoidable_o follow_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o catholic_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o allegation_n in_o his_o own_o word_n cap._n 2._o 118._o 119._o for_o god_n sake_n sir_n tell_v i_o plain_o in_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o you_o allege_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o your_o church_n do_v not_o you_o allow_v what_o sense_n you_o think_v true_a and_o disallow_v the_o contrary_a and_o do_v you_o not_o this_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o your_o private_a reason_n if_o you_o do_v why_o do_v you_o condemn_v it_o in_o other_o if_o you_o do_v not_o i_o pray_v what_o direction_n do_v you_o follow_v or_o whether_o you_o follow_v none_o at_o all_o if_o none_o at_o all_o this_o be_v like_o draw_v lot_n or_o throw_v dice_n for_o the_o choice_n of_o a_o religion_n if_o any_o other_o i_o beseech_v you_o tell_v i_o what_o it_o be_v perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o that_o will_v be_v to_o dance_v fine_o in_o a_o round_a thus_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n because_o the_o scripture_n avouch_v it_o and_o to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n say_v and_o mean_a so_o because_o they_o be_v so_o expound_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o this_o for_o a_o father_n to_o beget_v his_o son_n and_o the_o son_n to_o beget_v his_o father_n for_o a_o foundation_n etc._n etc._n the_o church_n you_o say_v be_v infallible_a i_o be_o very_o doubtful_a of_o it_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v it_o the_o scripture_n you_o say_v affirm_v it_o as_o in_o the_o 59_o of_o isaiah_n my_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o etc._n etc._n well_o i_o confess_v i_o find_v there_o these_o word_n but_o i_o be_o still_o doubtful_a whether_o they_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o they_o be_v whether_o they_o mean_v as_o you_o pretend_v you_o say_v the_o church_n say_v so_o which_o be_v infallible_a yea_o but_o that_o be_v the_o question_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v beg_v but_o prove_v neither_o be_v it_o so_o evident_a as_o to_o need_v no_o proof_n otherwise_o why_o bring_v you_o this_o text_n to_o prove_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o of_o such_o a_o strange_a quality_n above_o all_o other_o proposition_n as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v itself_o what_o then_o remain_v etc._n etc._n but_o universal_a tradition_n you_o say_v and_o so_o do_v i_o too_o be_v of_o itself_o credible_a and_o that_o have_v in_o all_o age_n teach_v the_o church_n infallibility_n with_o full_a consent_n but_o that_o it_o have_v i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o have_v i_o take_v upon_o your_o word_n for_o that_o be_v to_o build_v myself_o upon_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n upon_o you_o let_v then_o the_o tradition_n appear_v for_o a_o secret_a tradition_n be_v somewhat_o like_o a_o silent_a thunder_n you_o will_v perhaps_o produce_v etc._n etc._n 2._o for_o answer_v hereto_o 1._o if_o mr._n chillingworth_n adversary_n have_v ground_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n mere_o and_o only_o upon_o text_n of_o scripture_n capable_a of_o contrary_a sense_n there_o may_v have_v be_v just_a ground_n for_o mr._n chillingworth_n to_o have_v please_v himself_o as_o he_o oft_o do_v in_o insult_v thus_o on_o he_o and_o entangle_v he_o thus_o in_o his_o circle_n but_o mr._n chillingworth_n himself_o absolve_v he_o towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o former_a passage_n where_o he_o say_v but_o universal_a tradition_n you_o say_v and_o so_o do_v i_o too_o be_v of_o itself_o credible_a and_o that_o have_v in_o all_o age_n teach_v the_o church_n infallibility_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o he_o show_v clear_o that_o his_o adversary_n though_o he_o serve_v himself_o as_o reasonable_o he_o may_v and_o aught_o of_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n to_o fortify_v the_o traditionary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n yet_o make_v not_o those_o text_n understand_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n his_o only_a foundation_n but_o universal_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a foundation_n even_o of_o the_o credibility_n of_o scripture_n itself_o and_o therefore_o all_o mr._n chillingworth_n inference_n and_o retortion_n do_v not_o even_o in_o his_o own_o opinion_n
church_n as_o a_o doctrine_n traditionary_a and_o moreover_o it_o be_v attest_v by_o all_o ancient_a record_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n nemine_fw-la explicit_a contradicente_fw-la and_o it_o have_v be_v practise_v by_o counsel_n in_o all_o age_n not_o one_o catholic_n renounce_v his_o obedience_n in_o so_o much_o as_o to_o my_o understanding_n there_o be_v not_o one_o christian_a doctrine_n deliver_v with_o so_o full_a a_o assurance_n nor_o in_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n whereof_o it_o be_v less_o possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v mistake_v now_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o special_a truth_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n universal_a tradition_n which_o of_o itself_o be_v most_o credible_a and_o certain_a be_v believe_v and_o attest_v by_o the_o present_a church_n become_v most_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o we_o the_o church_n supply_v the_o place_n not_o only_o of_o a_o witness_n but_o of_o a_o ambassador_n likewise_o instruct_v and_o employ_v by_o christ_n himself_o as_o s._n augustine_n most_o effectual_o maintain_v so_o that_o in_o believe_v and_o obey_v she_o we_o believe_v and_o obey_v christ_n himself_o according_a to_o christ_n own_o expression_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o if_o any_o one_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n and_o therefore_o they_o that_o believe_v christian_a doctrine_n only_o because_o they_o think_v they_o find_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n only_o because_o their_o reason_n or_o fancy_n which_o they_o miscall_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o the_o doctrine_n themselves_o believe_v by_o they_o be_v true_a yet_o it_o be_v a_o hazard_n as_o to_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v so_o or_o no_o or_o however_o whether_o that_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o or_o no_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o a_o man_n by_o some_o casualty_n have_v find_v a_o transcribe_v copy_n of_o some_o part_n of_o a_o ambassador_n patent_n or_o instruction_n whereas_o catholic_n receive_v the_o command_n of_o their_o heavenly_a king_n and_o master_n from_o his_o ambassador_n own_o hand_n which_o not_o only_o will_v not_o conceal_v any_o thing_n necessary_a or_o requisite_a from_o they_o but_o likewise_o will_v be_v able_a upon_o occasion_n to_o clear_v all_o manner_n of_o difficulty_n that_o may_v arise_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o say_a instruction_n or_o patent_n have_v receive_v glorious_a promise_n of_o continual_a residence_n among_o we_o and_o of_o divine_a assistance_n to_o preserve_v he_o from_o any_o at_o least_o dangerous_a error_n 8._o these_o thing_n thus_o suppose_v mr._n chillingworth_n pretend_a circle_n and_o absurdity_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o catholic_a faith_n do_v clear_o and_o evident_o vanish_v for_o a_o catholic_a do_v not_o only_o or_o chief_o believe_v the_o church_n authority_n because_o to_o his_o private_a understanding_n and_o reason_n the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o say_v so_o but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n teach_v so_o both_o by_o profession_n and_o practice_n and_o that_o she_o teach_v this_o as_o a_o catholic_a tradition_n believe_v and_o practise_v in_o all_o age_n than_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a there_o shall_v be_v any_o testimony_n more_o assure_v and_o infallible_a so_o that_o if_o a_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a of_o any_o thing_n do_v before_o his_o own_o time_n as_o all_o reasonable_a man_n do_v agree_v that_o one_o may_v he_o can_v avoid_v be_v most_o sure_o of_o this_o if_o his_o passion_n or_o interest_n do_v not_o hinder_v he_o from_o search_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o i_o need_v not_o therefore_o particular_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n chillingworth_n discourse_n before_o produce_v since_o it_o whole_o proceed_v upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o his_o adversary_n and_o other_o catholic_n ground_n and_o since_o himself_o in_o the_o close_a of_o it_o seem_v to_o confess_v by_o object_v to_o himself_o universal_a tradition_n that_o if_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n can_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o catholic_a tradition_n it_o will_v be_v as_o much_o credible_a as_o if_o the_o scripture_n have_v express_o testify_v it_o since_o in_o his_o opinion_n the_o scripture_n itself_o and_o nothing_o beside_o enjoy_v its_o authority_n because_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o universal_a tradition_n and_o by_o consequence_n will_v not_o be_v liable_a to_o any_o circle_n or_o absurdity_n so_o that_o true_o i_o wonder_v why_o see_v mr._n chillingworth_n can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o catholic_n do_v general_o pretend_v that_o this_o doctrine_n come_v from_o tradition_n beside_o the_o proof_n of_o it_o out_o of_o scripture_n he_o shall_v notwithstanding_o dispute_v against_o it_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o ground_n for_o it_o but_o two_o or_o three_o questionable_a passage_n of_o scripture_n chap._n xliii_o a_o answer_n to_o mr._n chillingworth_n allegation_n of_o pretend_a uncertainty_n and_o casualty_n in_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o salvation_n of_o catholic_n 1._o there_o be_v in_o mr._n chillingworth_n book_n another_o rank_n of_o objection_n which_o though_o they_o do_v not_o direct_o combat_v the_o church_n infallibility_n or_o authority_n yet_o they_o have_v great_a effect_n upon_o i_o because_o they_o seem_v to_o infer_v that_o the_o faith_n and_o salvation_n likewise_o of_o catholic_n depend_v upon_o extreme_a uncertainty_n and_o casualty_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o a_o catholic_a can_v not_o give_v any_o assurance_n that_o his_o faith_n be_v safe_o ground_v for_o thus_o he_o argue_v c._n 2._o parag_n 63._o ad_fw-la 68_o the_o salvation_n of_o many_o million_o of_o papist_n as_o they_o suppose_v and_o tooth_n depend_v upon_o their_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n due_o administer_v to_o they_o this_o again_o upon_o the_o minister_n be_v a_o true_a priest_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o depend_v upon_o many_o uncertain_a and_o very_a contingent_a supposall_n as_o 1._o that_o he_o be_v baptize_v with_o due_a matter_n 2._o with_o due_a form_n 3._o with_o due_a intention_n 4._o that_o the_o bishop_n which_o ordain_v he_o priest_n ordain_v he_o likewise_o with_o due_a form_n intention_n etc._n etc._n 5._o that_o that_o bishop_n himself_o be_v a_o person_n fit_o qualify_v to_o give_v order_n that_o be_v be_v no_o simoniake_n etc._n etc._n 6._o that_o all_o that_o bishop_n progenitor_n be_v fit_o qualify_v and_o so_o till_o he_o arrive_v to_o the_o fountain_n of_o priesthood_n now_o he_o that_o shall_v put_v together_o and_o mature_o consider_v all_o the_o possible_a way_n of_o lapse_v and_o nullify_n a_o priesthood_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o believe_v say_v he_o will_v be_v very_o inclinable_a to_o believe_v that_o in_o a_o hundred_o seem_a priest_n there_o be_v not_o one_o true_a one_o but_o suppose_v this_o inconvenience_n assoil_v yet_o still_o the_o difficulty_n will_v remain_v whether_o he_o will_v pronounce_v the_o absolve_a word_n with_o intent_n to_o absolve_v you_o for_o perhaps_o he_o may_v be_v a_o secret_a jew_n moor_n or_o antitrinitarian_n which_o if_o he_o be_v than_o his_o intention_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n will_v be_v want_v etc._n etc._n 2._o hereto_o i_o answer_v 1_o that_o such_o kind_n of_o pretend_a uncertainty_n or_o nullity_n in_o particular_n do_v not_o prejudice_v the_o authority_n and_o stability_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a but_o that_o if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o have_v always_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o church_n viz._n that_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o continue_v till_o the_o world_n end_n a_o church_n govern_v by_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o preserve_v in_o all_o truth_n he_o will_v engage_v his_o omnipotency_n to_o make_v good_a his_o fidelity_n and_o by_o consequence_n he_o will_v take_v care_n to_o prevent_v or_o remedy_v all_o obstacle_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v otherwise_o able_a to_o evacuate_v such_o his_o promise_n and_o i_o suppose_v two_o such_o attribute_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o foundation_n strong_a enough_o to_o build_v a_o faith_n not_o obnoxious_a to_o such_o a_o world_n of_o casualty_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n suspect_v 2._o that_o mr._n chillingworth_n whole_a discourse_n proceed_v upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o the_o establish_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v not_o declare_v all_o those_o thing_n to_o be_v nullity_n nor_o any_o of_o they_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o he_o allege_v it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o among_o c●suists_n there_o be_v mention_v many_o nullity_n of_o order_n and_o other_o sacrament_n as_o simony_n or_o heresy_n or_o schism_n be_v say_v to_o nullify_v the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n but_o how_o to_o nullify_v it_o by_o take_v away_o the_o
character_n whole_o no._n but_o the_o church_n to_o show_v her_o detestation_n of_o those_o sin_n suspend_v the_o authority_n of_o exercise_v those_o office_n from_o any_o one_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o those_o sin_n and_o likewise_o from_o those_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o such_o simonicall_a or_o heretical_a bishop_n till_o they_o have_v give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o in_o that_o moderate_a judgement_n of_o pope_n melchiade_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o s._n augustine_n ep._n 162._o when_o he_o decree_v that_o if_o the_o donatist_n will_v return_v to_o the_o catholic_a communion_n their_o bishop_n if_o the_o more_o ancient_a in_o any_o city_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o such_o a_o city_n or_o if_o the_o young_a shall_v succeed_v upon_o the_o first_o vacancy_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o a_o reordination_n of_o such_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a bishop_n or_o of_o any_o priest_n make_v by_o they_o 3._o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o salvation_n of_o catholic_n do_v absolute_o depend_v upon_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n lawful_o administer_v for_o though_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_a that_o that_o and_o all_o other_o sacrament_n be_v lawful_o administer_v and_o by_o consequence_n we_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o christ_n will_v in_o general_n prevent_v all_o real_a want_n and_o obstacle_n thereto_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v affirm_v of_o each_o catholic_n in_o particular_a for_o to_o christian_n which_o be_v adulti_fw-la that_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o exercise_n of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n even_o actual_a baptism_n lawful_o administer_v be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a for_o in_o such_o person_n the_o votum_fw-la baptismi_fw-la will_v supply_v all_o want_n or_o defect_n impossible_a to_o be_v avoid_v and_o much_o more_o certain_o will_v the_o same_o votum_fw-la serve_v for_o other_o sacrament_n as_o the_o eucharist_n penance_n etc._n etc._n 4._o concern_v intention_n which_o the_o church_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n in_o instr._n arm._n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess._n 7._o ca._n 11._o have_v indeed_o define_v to_o be_v a_o necessary_a requisite_a to_o denominate_v a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v lawful_o administer_v in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n sacrament_n be_v perfect_v by_o three_o thing_n the_o matter_n form_n and_o person_n of_o the_o minister_n confer_v the_o sacrament_n with_o a_o intention_n of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v of_o which_o if_o any_o one_o be_v want_v the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o perfect_v and_o these_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o in_o minister_n when_o they_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v not_o require_v a_o intention_n at_o least_o of_o do_v what_o the_o church_n do_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n mr._n chillingworth_n may_v and_o i_o be_o confident_a do_v know_v that_o the_o intention_n require_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o may_v be_v find_v even_o in_o pagan_n heretic_n jew_n etc._n etc._n administer_a baptism_n so_o they_o do_v it_o as_o execute_v the_o office_n hypocritical_o intrude_v into_o by_o they_o in_o the_o due_a form_n and_o with_o a_o right_a pronunciation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n although_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o the_o secret_a of_o their_o heart_n they_o do_v renounce_v deride_v and_o detest_v that_o sacrament_n and_o all_o the_o efficacy_n ascribe_v to_o it_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o decision_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o the_o rescript_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o first_o and_o alexander_n the_o three_o quodam_fw-la and_o hereupon_o s._n thomas_n treat_v of_o this_o subject_n 2._o deliver_v his_o sense_n in_o these_o word_n some_o answer_n better_o say_v he_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v operate_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o minister_n he_o be_v and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o pronounctth_v be_v express_v the_o church_n intention_n the_o which_o suffice_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o a_o sacrament_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o outward_a expression_n of_o the_o contrary_a on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o minister_n or_o receiver_n of_o the_o sacrament_n upon_o which_o ground_n i_o suppose_v it_o be_v that_o salmeron_n the_o jesuit_n and_o scribonius_n marius_n a_o learned_a franciscan_a high_o esteem_v by_o cardinal_n perron_n beside_o some_o ancient_a schoolman_n do_v after_o this_o manner_n with_o a_o far_o great_a latitude_n then_o general_o controvertist_n or_o schoolman_n do_v allow_v 1._o endeavour_v to_o express_v their_o sense_n of_o s._n thomas_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o those_o two_o counsel_n viz_o that_o in_o the_o minister_n there_o may_v be_v a_o twofold_a intention_n 1._o mere_o speculative_a inwrape_v in_o the_o secret_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o of_o which_o no_o outward_a sign_n do_v appear_v nor_o indeed_o no_o sufficient_a one_o can_n of_o this_o intention_n the_o church_n judge_v not_o 2._o practical_a which_o relate_v to_o the_o outward_a act_n and_o be_v thereby_o real_o accomplish_v the_o former_a say_v these_o author_n unless_o the_o church_n shall_v define_v the_o contrary_a as_o hitherto_o to_o their_o seem_n she_o have_v not_o can_v neither_o profit_n nor_o prejudice_n in_o confer_v sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v a_o ill_a malicious_a intention_n it_o may_v help_v to_o damn_v the_o person_n but_o it_o will_v not_o hinder_v the_o validity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o the_o late_a practical_a intention_n be_v that_o which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v consider_v here_o as_o a_o servant_n that_o be_v send_v by_o his_o master_n to_o deliver_v possession_n of_o a_o house_n if_o he_o real_o perform_v the_o legal_a ceremony_n and_o pronounce_v the_o word_n requisite_a whatsoever_o thought_n of_o unwillingness_n reluctancy_n or_o contradiction_n lurk_v in_o his_o breast_n the_o delivery_n will_v be_v valid_a and_o true_o it_o seem_v not_o intelligible_a how_o it_o can_v be_v possible_a for_o a_o minister_n as_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n not_o compel_v by_o force_n nor_o draw_v by_o promise_n that_o know_v what_o he_o do_v and_o clear_o show_v that_o he_o will_v do_v what_o he_o know_v shall_v as_o the_o church_n command_v he_o with_o all_o due_a formality_n perform_v a_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n intend_v or_o resolve_v not_o to_o do_v what_o he_o do_v he_o may_v possible_o have_v in_o his_o wicked_a heart_n inward_a wish_n that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v want_v effect_n or_o a_o misbelief_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v nothing_o valuable_a but_o a_o mere_a superstitious_a vain_a or_o noxious_a ceremony_n but_o as_o for_o the_o thought_n by_o which_o perform_v a_o sacrament_n he_o will_v endeavour_v to_o intend_v not_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v such_o thought_n seem_v to_o be_v mere_a aerial_a fancy_n indeed_o if_o he_o show_v his_o contradiction_n or_o intention_n by_o any_o outward_a sign_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v judge_v that_o though_o he_o observe_v all_o the_o requisite_a formality_n yet_o he_o intend_v they_o mere_o in_o a_o mockery_n as_o if_o a_o actor_n upon_o a_o stage_n shall_v personate_v the_o confer_v a_o sacrament_n and_o much_o more_o if_o he_o neglect_v the_o due_a form_n of_o word_n he_o will_v thereby_o declare_v that_o real_o that_o be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n which_o he_o perform_v but_o a_o mere_a mockery_n and_o malicious_a scornful_a pageantry_n those_o learned_a and_o as_o yet_o uncensured_a author_n therefore_o who_o opinion_n i_o do_v here_o relate_v only_o historical_o do_v conceive_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o forementioned_a decision_n to_o be_v only_o this_o viz._n that_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o sacrament_n that_o they_o be_v only_o this_o viz._n that_o they_o be_v not_o administer_v jest_o histrionical_o and_o ridiculous_o but_o after_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v judge_v that_o he_o who_o administer_v they_o intend_v to_o perform_v his_o duty_n and_o office_n impose_v on_o he_o by_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o perform_v and_o confer_v a_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o play_v the_o fool_n not_o that_o the_o church_n ever_o intend_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v valid_a or_o null_a according_a to_o the_o inward_a fancy_n of_o the_o administrer_fw-fr or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o a_o atheistical_a or_o malicious_a bishop_n or_o priest_n to_o damn_v all_o his_o diocese_n and_o parish_n and_o for_o a_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o even_o at_o the_o very_a time_n when_o this_o article_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o intention_n be_v debate_v and_o conclude_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n catharinus_n bishop_n
a_o schism_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n say_v optatus_n before_o he_o concern_v the_o same_o donatist_n lib._n 1._o the_o business_n in_o hand_n be_v concern_v separation_n in_o africa_n as_o in_o all_o other_o province_n likewise_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n before_o it_o be_v divide_v by_o those_o who_o ordain_v majorinus_n in_o the_o chair_n upon_o which_o by_o succession_n thou_o be_v set_v the_o matter_n therefore_o to_o be_v consider_v be_v which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n have_v remain_v in_o the_o root_n with_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o of_o they_o go_v out_o which_o of_o they_o be_v set_v upon_o a_o new_a chair_n episcopal_a which_o heretofore_o be_v not_o in_o be_v which_o of_o they_o have_v raise_v a_o altar_n against_o a_o former_a altar_n which_o of_o they_o make_v a_o ordination_n during_o the_o life_n time_n of_o he_o who_o be_v before_o ordany_v last_o which_o of_o they_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o s._n john_n the_o apostle_n who_o foretell_v that_o many_o antichrist_n will_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n 4._o the_o almost_o only_o considerable_a author_n among_o protestant_n who_o seem_v to_o have_v write_v large_o and_o purposely_o upon_o this_o argument_n of_o schism_n be_v that_o unfortunate_a apostate_n m._n antonius_n de_fw-fr dominis_n archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n who_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o index_n of_o the_o head_n of_o his_o book_n and_o section_n allow_v a_o entire_a book_n to_o this_o subject_n but_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v whether_o through_o guilt_n or_o what_o other_o mystery_n i_o know_v not_o but_o in_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o his_o work_n that_o book_n which_o he_o intend_v or_o have_v write_v de_fw-la schismate_fw-la appear_v not_o there_o be_v a_o hiatus_fw-la in_o that_o place_n not_o yet_o supply_v but_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o quotation_n chap._n xlvi_o quotation_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o show_v the_o sinfulness_n and_o danger_n of_o schism_n 1._o the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o i_o especial_o take_v notice_n of_o concern_v the_o sinfulness_n and_o extreme_a danger_n of_o schism_n be_v these_o viz._n those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n mat._n 18._o 7._o woe_n unto_o the_o world_n because_o of_o scandal_n for_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o scandal_n come_v notwithstanding_o woe_n to_o that_o man_n by_o who_o the_o scandal_n come_v now_o the_o father_n general_o by_o scandal_n understand_v heresy_n and_o schism_n which_o interpretation_n s._n paul_n seem_v to_o justify_v join_v together_o schism_n and_o scandal_n as_o synonyma_fw-la or_o word_n of_o the_o same_o importance_n when_o he_o say_v rom._n 16._o 17._o i_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n observe_v those_o who_o make_v schism_n and_o scandal_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o avoid_v they_o for●_n such_o man_n serve_v not_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o their_o own_o belly_n and_o by_o kind_a speech_n and_o benediction_n seduce_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o simple_a again_o say_v our_o saviour_n hereby_o shall_v man_n know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o love_v one_o another_o add_v to_o this_o his_o last_o legacy_n peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o as_o likewise_o that_o say_n of_o he_o which_o s._n hierome_n quote_v from_o tradition_n nunquam_fw-la l●ti_fw-la sitis_fw-la nisi_fw-la cum_fw-la fratres_fw-la vestros_fw-la in_o charitate_fw-la videritis_fw-la that_o be_v be_v yet_o never_o joyful_a but_o when_o you_o see_v your_o brethren_n in_o charity_n to_o all_o which_o i_o will_v subjoin_v that_o passionate_a exhortation_n of_o s._n paul_n philip._n 2_o 1._o if_o there_o be_v therefore_o any_o consolation_n in_o christ_n if_o any_o comfort_n of_o love_n if_o any_o fellowship_n of_o the_o spirit_n if_o any_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n fulfil_v you_o my_o joy_n that_o you_o be_v likeminded_a unanimous_a think_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v nothing_o through_o contention_n or_o vainglory_n 2._o the_o same_o affection_n and_o zeal_n do_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n express_v to_o catholic_a unity_n with_o incredible_a efficacy_n show_v their_o detestation_n against_o schism_n and_o division_n witness_v s._n irenaeus_n lib._n 4._o c._n 62._o god_n will_v judge_v those_o which_o make_v schism_n in_o the_o church_n ambitious_a man_n who_o have_v not_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n but_o rather_o embrace_v their_o own_o interest_n then_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n for_o small_a and_o light_a cause_n divide_v the_o great_a and_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n for_o in_o the_o end_n they_o can_v make_v any_o reformation_n so_o important_a as_o the_o evil_a of_o schism_n be_v pernicious_a witness_v s._n dionysius_n of_o alexandrina_n 45._o write_v to_o novatian_n a_o man_n ought_v rather_o to_o endure_v all_o thing_n then_o to_o consent_v to_o division_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n since_o martyrdom_n to_o which_o man_n expose_v themselves_o to_o the_o end_n to_o hinder_v the_o dismember_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o less_o glorious_a than_o those_o which_o a_o man_n suffer_v for_o refuse_v to_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n witness_v s._n cyprian_a de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles._n do_v they_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v among_o they_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v i_o speak_v of_o those_o which_o make_v assembly_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n no_o although_o they_o be_v draw_v to_o torment_n and_o execution_n for_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n yet_o this_o pollution_n be_v not_o wash_v away_o no_o not_o with_o their_o blood_n this_o inexplicable_a and_o inexcusable_a crime_n of_o schism_n be_v not_o purge_v away_o even_o by_o death_n itself_o that_o man_n can_v be_v a_o martyr_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n and_o again_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n witness_v s._n pacian_n ad_fw-la sympr_fw-la cp_n 2._o although_o that_o nova_n jan_n have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o receive_v a_o crown_n and_o why_o because_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n from_o concord_n from_o that_o mother_n of_o who_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o martyr_n must_v be_v a_o portion_n witness_v s._n optatus_n lib._n 1._o among_o other_o precept_n the_o divine_a injunction_n have_v likewise_o forbid_v these_o three_o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o go_v after_o strange_a god_n and_o in_o capitibus_fw-la mandatorum_fw-la in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v a_o schism_n he_o mean_v i_o suppose_v those_o word_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o decalogue_n the_o lord_n thy_o god_n be_v one_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o i_o again_o lib._n 2._o the_o unity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n be_v the_o prime_a endowment_n give_v to_o the_o church_n witness_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o eph._n hom_n 11._o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v so_o sharp_o provoke_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n insomuch_o as_o though_o we_o shall_v have_v perform_v all_o other_o sort_n of_o good_a thing_n yet_o we_o shall_v incur_v a_o punishment_n no_o less_o cruel_a by_o divide_v the_o unity_n and_o fullness_n of_o the_o church_n than_o those_o have_v do_v who_o pierce_v and_o divide_v christ_n own_o body_n witness_v the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can_v 1._o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n 3._o witness_v s._n augustine_n the_o symb._n ad_fw-la catech_n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o for_o this_o cause_n the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o sacrament_n he_o mean_v the_o creed_n be_v terminate_v in_o the_o article_n concern_v the_o holy_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o if_o any_o man_n be_v find_v separate_v from_o she_o he_o shall_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o number_n of_o child_n neither_o shall_v he_o have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n and_o it_o will_v nothing_o avail_v he_o to_o have_v right_o believe_v or_o to_o have_v do_v never_o so_o many_o good_a work_n without_o this_o conclusion_n of_o the_o sovereign_a good_a again_o in_o psa._n 21._o whosoever_o have_v charity_n be_v assure_v but_o as_o for_o charity_n no_o man_n transport_v it_o out_o of_o the_o church_n again_o the_o bap._n con_v don._n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o those_o who_o the_o donatist_n heal_v of_o the_o wound_n of_o i_o dolatry_n and_o infidelity_n they_o themselves_o wind_v more_o dangerous_o with_o the_o wound_n of_o schism_n again_o sup_v gest_n emar_fw-la out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o heretic_n may_v have_v all_o thing_n but_o salvation_n he_o may_v have_v the_o sacrament_n he_o may_v sing_v
again_o the_o util_a cred_a c._n 2._o there_o be_v one_o church_n if_o you_o cast_v your_o eye_n upon_o the_o surface_n of_o the_o earth_n more_o abundant_a in_o multitude_n and_o likewise_o as_o those_o who_o know_v by_o experience_n affirm_v more_o sincere_a in_o truth_n then_o all_o other_o but_o concern_v truth_n that_o be_v another_o dispute_n and_o again_o cont_n pet._n l._n 2._o c._n 95._o division_n and_o dissension_n make_v you_o heretic_n and_o peace_n and_o unity_n make_v we_o catholic_n and_o uincentius_n lerinensis_n cap._n 9_o o_o admirable_a change_n the_o first_o author_n of_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o the_o sectator_n heretic_n namely_o because_o they_o separate_v for_o they_o and_o s._n prosper_n the_o prom_n &_o be_v dei_fw-la p._n 2._o l._n 5._o he_o who_o communicate_v with_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o catholic_a and_o he_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o it_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n hereupon_o it_o be_v that_o the_o father_n understand_v and_o interpret_v the_o word_n c●tholique_n not_o with_o respect_n to_o doctrine_n or_o belief_n but_o communion_n external_a so_o s._n augustine_n collat_n car_fw-fr d._n 3._o we_o show_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o communion_n that_o we_o have_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o again_o brevic_a coll_v l._n 3._o the_o donatist_n say_v he_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_n or_o universal_a be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o universality_n of_o nation_n but_o from_o the_o plenitude_n of_o sacrament_n that_o be_v from_o the_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o again_o ep._n 48._o ad_fw-la vinc._n reg._n thou_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v speak_v subtle_o when_o thou_o interprete_a the_o name_n catholic_n not_o of_o universal_a communion_n but_o of_o observation_n of_o all_o precept_n and_o divine_a sacrament_n or_o mystery_n 7._o and_o to_o the_o end_n to_o demonstrate_v to_o schismatic_n that_o they_o can_v not_o pretend_v to_o any_o portion_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o father_n ordinary_o silence_v they_o from_o any_o claim_n thereto_o by_o ask_v they_o whether_o they_o can_v address_v communicatory_a letter_n unto_o or_o receive_v such_o letter_n from_o all_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o they_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v sufficient_o convict_v so_o s._n augustine_n ep_n 163._o speak_v of_o fortunatus_n the_o donatist_n i_o ask_v he_o if_o he_o can_v send_v communicatory_a letter_n which_o we_o call_v formatas_fw-la whither_o i_o will_v name_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o the_o thing_n be_v manifest_o false_a they_o quit_v that_o discourse_n with_o confusion_n of_o language_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o ancient_a schismatic_n not_o be_v able_a with_o any_o the_o least_o pretence_n to_o challenge_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_n be_v force_v to_o repair_v themselves_o by_o lay_v a_o aspersion_n or_o diminution_n on_o that_o name_n as_o when_o sympronian_n tell_v s._n pacian_n ep_n 1._o that_o none_o under_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o when_o gaudentius_n the_o donatist_n affirm_v that_o the_o word_n catholic_n be_v a_o humane_a fiction_n which_o s._n augustine_n call_v verba_fw-la blasphemia_fw-la blasphemous_a word_n lib._n 1._o con_v gaudent_fw-la 8._o notwithstanding_o in_o some_o case_n the_o father_n allow_v that_o a_o man_n may_v possible_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n without_o imputation_n of_o schism_n according_a to_o this_o discourse_n which_o i_o have_v find_v quote_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n often_o time_n also_o it_o happen_v say_v he_o that_o the_o divine_a providence_n permit_v that_o some_o good_a man_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a congregation_n by_o some_o over-turbulent_a sedition_n of_o carnal_a man_n which_o injury_n do_v unto_o such_o man_n when_o they_o shall_v bear_v it_o patient_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o shall_v not_o attempt_v any_o innovation_n of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n they_o will_v instruct_v man_n with_o what_o true_a affection_n and_o with_o how_o great_a sincerity_n and_o charity_n we_o ought_v to_o serve_v god_n the_o design_n and_o resolution_n therefore_o of_o such_o man_n be_v either_o to_o return_v when_o the_o tempest_n be_v calm_v or_o if_o that_o be_v not_o permit_v they_o either_o by_o reason_n that_o the_o tempest_n yet_o continue_v or_o out_o of_o fear_n lest_o by_o their_o return_n another_o tempest_n shall_v be_v raise_v more_o violent_a than_o the_o former_a they_o preserve_v a_o will_n and_o affection_n to_o serve_v even_o those_o to_o the_o violence_n and_o commotion_n of_o who_o they_o have_v give_v place_n defend_v to_o the_o death_n without_o make_v any_o separate_a conventicle_n and_o maintain_v by_o their_o testimony_n the_o faith_n which_o they_o know_v be_v preach_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n such_o as_o these_o the_o father_n who_o see_v in_o secret_a crown_n in_o secret_a 9_o i_o remember_v that_o monsienr_n grotius_n from_o this_o speech_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o a_o suitable_a action_n i_o think_v of_o s._n chrysostom_n defend_v the_o non-association_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o himself_o and_o such_o peaceable_a protestant_n as_o himself_o but_o sure_o in_o vain_a for_o first_o this_o discourse_n of_o s._n augustine_n suppose_v that_o such_o person_n do_v not_o hold_v any_o doctrine_n condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n 2._o that_o whensoever_o leave_n or_o opportunity_n shall_v be_v give_v they_o will_v ready_o embrace_v her_o communion_n 3._o that_o they_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o any_o sect_n manifest_o in_o separation_n from_o it_o none_o of_o which_o supposition_n can_v he_o apply_v to_o monsieur_n grotius_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o such_o a_o communion_n in_o voto_fw-la or_o desire_n can_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o antiquity_n avail_v they_o since_o if_o it_o can_v no_o heretic_n nor_o schismatique_n can_v be_v culpable_a or_o that_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n do_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o of_o they_o but_o will_v willing_o communicate_v with_o she_o upon_o these_o term_n viz._n that_o she_o will_v change_v the_o clause_n and_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n and_o reform_v herself_o according_a to_o the_o pattern_n of_o their_o particular_a respective_a sect_n 10._o a_o four_o mark_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v when_o the_o first_o author_n of_o they_o can_v be_v name_v and_o by_o consequence_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v in_o time_n posteriour_a to_o catholic_a unity_n and_o particular_o for_o doctrine_n such_o be_v esteem_v heretical_a which_o can_v not_o be_v maintain_v to_o be_v apostolical_a that_o be_v not_o which_o the_o author_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v deducible_a out_o of_o apostolical_a write_n for_o all_o heretic_n general_o allege_a scripture_n for_o all_o their_o blasphemy_n but_o which_o they_o can_v not_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v profess_v in_o the_o church_n and_o deduce_v successive_o from_o age_n to_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n thus_o s._n athanasius_n in_o dec._n syn._n nic._n cont_n arian_n behold_v we_o have_v prove_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o doctrine_n deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n from_o father_n to_o son_n but_o as_o for_o you_o arian_n new-jewe_n and_o child_n of_o caiaphas_n what_o progenitour_n can_v you_o show_v of_o your_o speech_n so_o likewise_o s._n pacian_n epist._n 3._o for_o myself_o hold_v myself_o assure_v upon_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n and_o content_v myself_o with_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o ancient_a congregation_n i_o have_v not_o learn_v any_o study_n of_o discord_n chap._n xlviii_o a_o application_n of_o the_o former_a mark_n of_o schism_n to_o the_o present_a controversy_n and_o a_o demonstration_n that_o they_o do_v not_o suit_n to_o the_o roman_a but_o only_o protestant_a church_n 1._o have_v thus_o inform_v myself_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o antiquity_n concern_v the_o nature_n and_o mark_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n and_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o controversy_n in_o hand_n between_o the_o roman_a and_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n church_n it_o appear_v as_o clear_v to_o i_o as_o the_o sun_n at_o noon_n day_n that_o if_o the_o same_o father_n and_o bishop_n meet_v in_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n to_o condemn_v the_o arian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o novatian_o and_o donatist_n etc._n etc._n have_v live_v in_o these_o time_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n have_v condemn_v the_o lutheran_n calvinist_n english-protestants_a socinian_n etc._n etc._n for_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o there_o be_v real_o a_o schism_n among_o the_o western_a christian_n since_o luther_n apostasy_n in_o as_o much_o as_o so_o many_o sect_n do_v not_o only_o actual_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o before_o that_o separation_n they_o all_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o
the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o protestant_n call_v error_n and_o those_o in_o themselves_o damnable_a unless_o where_o invincible_a ignorance_n shall_v perhaps_o excuse_v and_o therefore_o oblige_v all_o christian_a people_n after_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a light_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o luther_n tindall_n etc._n etc._n to_o forsake_v they_o and_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o those_o that_o persist_v in_o the_o maintain_n of_o they_o i_o say_v it_o be_v confess_v that_o all_o such_o pretend_a error_n be_v spread_v through_o the_o whole_a catholic_a ch●rch_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n begin_v his_o apostasy_n nemine_fw-la contradiceute_n now_o by_o the_o way_n how_o this_o can_v agree_v with_o that_o sense_n which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v preserve_v his_o church_n in_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o i_o confess_v i_o can_v comprehend_v for_o if_o all_o heresy_n be_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n as_o the_o father_n say_v then_o much_o more_o heresy_n in_o themselves_o damnable_a although_o the_o church_n have_v not_o condemn_v they_o because_o against_o essential_a truth_n beside_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o invincible_a ignorance_n may_v possible_o excuse_v pelagianism_n photinianisme_n arianisme_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o upon_o their_o ground_n notwithstanding_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n all_o christian_n for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o may_v as_o well_o have_v be_v infect_v with_o these_o heresy_n also_o 3._o it_o be_v second_o confess_v that_o except_v two_o or_o three_o and_o those_o not_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a opinion_n all_o the_o rest_n now_o condemn_v by_o protestant_n be_v public_o and_o general_o embrace_v and_o profess_v for_o several_a age_n before_o luther_n i_o will_v add_v by_o all_o age_n and_o church_n till_o s._n gregory_n day_n inclusive_a that_o be_v for_o about_o one_o thousand_o year_n i_o may_v go_v further_o and_o justify_v my_o assertion_n clear_o and_o evident_o but_o for_o the_o present_n let_v we_o pitch_v upon_o s._n gregory_n time_n for_o warrant_v of_o what_o i_o have_v say_v beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n gregory_n write_n liturgy_n ritual_a missal_n etc._n etc._n and_o beside_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a history_n especial_o of_o england_n and_o the_o synod_n ancient_o assemble_v there_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n as_o humphrey_n fulke_n the_o centuriator_n of_o magdeburg_n etc._n etc._n who_o word_n describe_v the_o religion_n bring_v into_o england_n by_o s._n gregory_n and_o s._n augustine_n the_o benedictin_a monk_n 333._o be_v these_o they_o bring_v in_o say_v they_o altar_n holy_a vestment_n image_n chalice_n candlestick_n censer_n sacred_a vessel_n holy_a water_n and_o sprinkle_n with_o it_o relic_n and_o the_o translation_n of_o they_o dedication_n of_o church_n with_o the_o bone_n and_o ash_n of_o dead_a man_n consecration_n of_o altar_n of_o chalice_n of_o corporal_n of_o baptismal_a font_n of_o chrism_n of_o oil_n of_o church_n by_o use_v sprinkle_v of_o holy_a water_n celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n use_v of_o the_o archiepiscopal_a pall_n in_o the_o solemnize_n of_o the_o mass_n book_n of_o roman_a rituall_n and_o a_o burden_n of_o ceremony_n freewill_n merit_n and_o justification_n by_o work_n penance_n satisfaction_n purgatory_n single_a life_n of_o priest_n public_a invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o worship_n of_o they_o veneration_n of_o image_n exorcism_n indulgence_n vow_n monachisme_n transubstantion_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a exercise_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o his_o primacy_n over_o all_o church_n in_o a_o word_n the_o remain_a chaos_n as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o popish_a superstition_n 4._o it_o be_v three_o evident_a that_o within_o that_o time_n in_o several_a counsel_n provincial_n at_o least_o most_o of_o the_o point_n in_o debate_n between_o protestant_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v be_v either_o decide_v or_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o suppose_v and_o all_o the_o practice_n which_o protestant_n condemn_v justify_v and_o command_v no_o better_a proof_n of_o which_o assertion_n need_v be_v seek_v for_o than_o that_o tome_n of_o english_a synod_n publish_v by_o sir_n henry_n spelman_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v in_o any_o synod_n that_o any_o of_o those_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n have_v be_v condemn_v nor_o in_o the_o least_o degree_n censure_v so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o authority_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o above_o one_o thousand_o year_n together_o if_o she_o can_v challenge_v either_o belief_n or_o but_o noncontradiction_n to_o her_o decision_n they_o can_v be_v excuse_v who_o not_o only_o not_o receive_v but_o oppose_v yea_o condemn_v yea_o blasphemous_o calumniate_v she_o both_o for_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n so_o unanimous_o profess_v and_o embrace_v and_o all_o this_o even_o then_o when_o they_o acknowledge_v she_o to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n credo_fw-la unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la but_o how_o unam_fw-la if_o they_o may_v yea_o ought_v to_o divide_v and_o tear_v she_o in_o piece_n how_o sanctam_fw-la if_o defile_v with_o so_o much_o profaneness_n superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o all_o this_o not_o only_o permit_v but_o command_v by_o she_o how_o catholicam_fw-la if_o contradict_v the_o ancient_a universal_a church_n last_o how_o apostolicam_fw-la if_o so_o evident_o condemnable_a by_o apostolic_a write_n as_o be_v pretend_v 5._o in_o the_o four_o place_n it_o be_v to_o i_o a_o irrefragable_a testimony_n of_o a_o strange_a watchfulness_n of_o divine_a providence_n over_o the_o church_n to_o preserve_v it_o from_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o be_v establish_v and_o dangerous_a error_n that_o during_o those_o worst_a time_n thereof_o when_o ignorance_n worldliness_n pride_n tyranny_n etc._n etc._n reign_v with_o so_o much_o scope_n i_o mean_v during_o the_o time_n of_o about_o six_o age_n before_o luther_n when_o the_o pope_n so_o wicked_a so_o abominable_a in_o their_o life_n enjoy_v so_o unlimited_a a_o power_n even_o over_o secular_a prince_n themselves_o and_o much_o more_o over_o the_o clergy_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o there_o be_v any_o innovation_n at_o all_o in_o any_o point_n that_o concern_v doctrine_n define_v by_o counsel_n nor_o particular_o that_o the_o pope_n though_o in_o practice_n they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o vast_a exercise_n of_o external_a jurisdiction_n yet_o that_o they_o ever_o attempt_v much_o less_o effect_v the_o introduce_v any_o decision_n as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la of_o their_o power_n above_o that_o which_o be_v universal_o believe_v not_o only_o in_o the_o former_a age_n after_o s._n gregory_n time_n but_o in_o time_n immemoriall_n before_o that_o 6._o in_o the_o five_o place_n concern_v the_o time_n between_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o s._n gregory_n it_o appear_v to_o i_o evident_o that_o many_o point_n now_o in_o controversy_n have_v be_v define_v express_o against_o protestant_n that_o many_o have_v be_v universal_o repute_v heteriques_n for_o maintain_v the_o very_a same_o opinion_n now_o again_o innovate_v by_o protestant_n as_o aërius_n vigilantius_n jovinian_a etc._n etc._n that_o scarce_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o be_v express_o maintain_v by_o the_o father_n general_o that_o whatsoever_o passage_n seem_o contradict_v to_o roman_a doctrine_n be_v out_o of_o the_o father_n produce_v by_o protestant_n do_v at_o the_o most_o only_o argue_v want_n of_o memory_n in_o the_o father_n oppose_v that_o in_o one_o obscure_a place_n which_o they_o have_v plain_o affirm_v in_o twenty_o that_o those_o father_n who_o be_v so_o quick-sighted_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o so_o zealous_a to_o condemn_v any_o innovation_n in_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n yet_o neither_o have_v observe_v nor_o oppose_v any_o one_o point_n either_o of_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n receive_v in_o s._n gregory_n time_n and_o continue_v to_o these_o as_o a_o innovation_n that_o the_o general_a language_n of_o the_o father_n when_o they_o speak_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la concern_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a purgaetory_n the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n be_v like_o those_o of_o these_o time_n the_o ancient_a outward_a form_n of_o the_o church_n like_o that_o of_o the_o present_a and_o on_o the_o contrary_a all_o these_o both_o expression_n and_o liturgy_n and_o outward_a face_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n much_o more_o unlike_a to_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o calvinist_n or_o lutheran_n &c._n &c._n yea_o or_o english_a protestant_n in_o thing_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a when_o they_o be_v from_o the_o congregation_n of_o ancient_a heretic_n 7._o in_o the_o last_o place_n
let_v they_o choose_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o they_o have_v rather_o believe_v they_o call_v themselves_o christian_n we_o propose_v to_o they_o jesus_n christ_n and_o donatus_n let_v they_o consider_v what_o will_v become_v of_o they_o if_o they_o bestow_v only_a word_n upon_o jesus_n christ_n and_o their_o beart_n upon_o donatus_n so_o that_o this_o conclusion_n of_o he_o be_v unalterable_o true_a not_o for_o his_o time_n only_o but_o till_o christ_n second_o come_v viz._n that_o all_o separation_n which_o be_v make_v before_o the_o draw_v the_o net_n on_o shore_n or_o before_o harvest_n i._n e._n the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v a_o eamnable_a separation_n be_v sacrilegium_fw-la shismatis_fw-la quod_fw-la omne_fw-la scelera_fw-la supergreditur_fw-la i_o e._n be_v the_o sacrilege_n of_o schism_n which_o surpass_v all_o other_o crime_n aug._n con_v ep._n parm_n l_o 2._o 10._o therefore_o to_o show_v the_o extreme_a in_o justice_n of_o english_a protestant_n against_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o 〈◊〉_d for_o it_o we_o may_v desire_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o in_o their_o own_o congregation_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o connive_v at_o both_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o abuse_n in_o practice_n to_o support_v a_o schismatical_a unity_n which_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v for_o catholic_a unity_n so_o s._n augustine_n speak_v to_o the_o donatist_n lib._n 2._o why_o do_v they_o say_v he_o pernicious_o suffer_v such_o kind_n of_o man_n in_o the_o crime_n of_o a_o sacrilegious_a schism_n which_o they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v tolerate_v profitable_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o catholic_n unity_n again_o let_v they_o consider_v with_o what_o justice_n they_o can_v condemn_v the_o other_o sect_n presbyterian_o and_o separatist_n if_o they_o seek_v the_o same_o destructive_a way_n of_o reform_v they_o which_o themselves_o practise_v upon_o the_o catholic_n for_o the_o presbyterian_o will_v allege_v scripture_n as_o well_o as_o they_o they_o will_v pretend_v error_n and_o superstition_n as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o the_o separatist_n beyond_o this_o will_v allege_v for_o themselves_o that_o which_o it_o will_v be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o reply_v reasonable_o to_o for_o they_o will_v say_v since_o you_o yourselves_o have_v take_v away_o all_o oblige_a humane_a authority_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n give_v we_o leave_v to_o enjoy_v that_o liberty_n for_o our_o own_o conscience_n which_o you_o have_v purchase_v we_o we_o desire_v not_o to_o tyrannize_v over_o other_o man_n only_o we_o will_v not_o suffer_v that_o you_o shall_v pretend_v by_o a_o show_n of_o liberty_n to_o introduce_v tyranny_n if_o protestant_n shall_v oppose_v secular_a power_n or_o multitude_n to_o such_o allegation_n that_o will_v be_v to_o confess_v that_o their_o reformation_n be_v a_o mere_a worldly_a design_n if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o a_o small_a conventicle_n of_o sectary_n shall_v prevail_v against_o a_o national_n synod_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n then_o they_o must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o to_o have_v those_o efficacious_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n apply_v unto_o they_o be_v the_o just_a weigh_v of_o matter_n come_v to_o this_o pass_n that_o a_o council_n of_o the_o maximianenses_n who_o be_v a_o under-segment_a of_o your_o sect_n shall_v have_v no_o force_n or_o consideration_n against_o you_o because_o in_o comparison_n of_o your_o number_n they_o be_v but_o a_o very_a few_o and_o shall_v a_o council_n of_o your_o own_o prevail_v against_o nation_n against_o the_o heritage_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n his_o possession_n i_o wonder_v if_o that_o man_n have_v any_o blood_n leave_v in_o his_o body_n that_o shall_v not_o blush_v at_o the_o mention_v of_o such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o aug._n ep._n 154._o ad_fw-la emer_n don._n 11._o i_o will_v conclude_v this_o conclusion_n with_o a_o brief_a consideration_n of_o a_o accusation_n which_o protestant_n lie_v against_o catholic_n who_o they_o charge_v with_o extreme_a uncharitableness_n for_o affirm_v that_o protestant_n die_v in_o their_o religion_n without_o repentance_n can_v be_v save_v hereto_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o catholic_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o salvation_n or_o damnation_n of_o protestant_n in_o particular_a yea_o they_o will_v not_o doubt_v to_o say_v that_o to_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o neither_o their_o heresy_n nor_o schism_n shall_v prove_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la damnable_a but_o that_o suppose_v they_o die_v with_o a_o intention_n to_o renounce_v whatsoever_o their_o opinion_n shall_v appear_v to_o they_o to_o have_v be_v erroneous_a their_o invincible_a ignorance_n cause_v by_o education_n misinformation_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n may_v probable_o find_v pardon_n from_o our_o merciful_a judge_n in_o case_n they_o be_v true_o penitent_a for_o all_o other_o fault_n commit_v by_o they_o upon_o supposition_n that_o any_o such_o have_v be_v commit_v but_o sure_o it_o be_v no_o uncharitable_a judgement_n to_o say_v in_o general_a 2._o that_o it_o be_v damnable_a to_o die_v in_o a_o damnable_a or_o mortal_a sin_n without_o repentance_n and_o therefore_o since_o even_o by_o protestant_n confession_n heresy_n and_o schism_n be_v in_o a_o high_a degree_n damnable_a sin_n and_o since_o catholic_n be_v very_o persuade_v that_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a of_o these_o two_o crime_n it_o may_v be_v call_v in_o they_o a_o mistake_n but_o it_o can_v be_v call_v uncharitableness_n in_o catholic_n upon_o such_o a_o supposition_n to_o make_v such_o a_o judgement_n yea_o on_o the_o contrary_n i_o wonder_v how_o the_o english_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n who_o pretend_v that_o catholic_n be_v guilty_a of_o these_o two_o crime_n can_v notwithstanding_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o antiquity_n affirm_v that_o such_o person_n be_v not_o in_o a_o damnable_a estate_n sure_o it_o be_v self-guilt_n and_o not_o charity_n that_o make_v they_o so_o charitable_a chap._n li._n the_o four_o conclusion_n proof_n of_o it_o out_o of_o father_n the_o four_o conclusion_n be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n ever_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v visible_a continue_v in_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o true_a doctrine_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o conclusion_n out_o of_o scripture_n text_n sufficient_a both_o for_o number_n and_o perspicuity_n have_v already_o be_v produce_v both_o out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o second_o conclusion_n 2._o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v no_o less_o conspicuous_a in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n it_o be_v easy_a say_v s._n chrysostome_n hom._n 4._o in_o esa._n that_o the_o sun_n shall_v be_v extinguish_v then_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v obscure_v and_o again_o the_o sun_n be_v not_o more_o manifest_a nor_o the_o light_a proceed_n from_o it_o theu_o the_o action_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n say_v s._n cyprian_n de_fw-fr unit._n eccl._n be_v clothe_v with_o the_o light_n of_o our_o lord_n spread_v its_o beam_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n 3_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n have_v this_o most_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o can_v be_v hide_v and_o again_o do_v not_o these_o man_n grope_v at_o noon_n day_n as_o if_o it_o be_v midnight_n it_o be_v a_o quality_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n not_o to_o see_v the_o thing_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n most_o clear_a viz._n the_o church_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o light_n of_o all_o nation_n out_o of_o the_o unity_n whereof_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v though_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v do_v with_o great_a exactness_n and_o diligence_n yet_o can_v no_o more_o secure_v they_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n than_o the_o spider_n web_n from_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o cold_a hereupon_o the_o same_o saint_n de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccl._n call_v christ_n the_o most_o true_a declarer_fw-la of_o his_o body_n insomuch_o as_o be_v suffer_v we_o not_o to_o be_v mistake_v neither_o in_o the_o bridegroom_n nor_o in_o his_o spouse_n upon_o which_o ground_n he_o make_v several_a exclamation_n to_o this_o purpose_n id._n cont_n cres_z l._n 3._o o_o the_o mad_a perverseness_n of_o man_n thou_o conceive_v that_o thou_o deserve_v to_o be_v praise_v for_o believe_v christ_n who_o thou_o see_v not_o and_o believe_v thou_o shall_v not_o be_v damn_v for_o deny_v his_o church_n which_o thou_o see_v since_o that_o head_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o this_o body_n be_v upon_o earth_n thou_o acknowledge_v jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o which_o be_v write_v of_o he_o o_o god_n be_v thou_o exalt_v above_o the_o heaven_n and_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o let_v your_o glory_n be_v spread_v through_o all_o the_o earth_n the_o like_a expression_n he_o
of_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_a writer_n by_o which_o they_o virtual_o confess_v that_o if_o they_o have_v live_v in_o s._n gregory_n day_n they_o will_v as_o well_o have_v separate_v from_o he_o beside_o it_o appear_v by_o s._n gregory_n epistle_n that_o he_o as_o pope_n enjoy_v a_o supereminent_a authority_n and_o sollicitous_o exercise_v a_o care_n over_o all_o christian_a church_n as_o for_o his_o jurisdiction_n as_o patriarch_n and_o the_o extension_n thereof_o that_o i_o take_v not_o here_o into_o consideration_n since_o it_o be_v not_o a_o point_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n 3._o from_o s._n gregory_n day_n till_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o east_n from_o the_o external_a jurisdiction_n rather_o than_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o western_a church_n the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o visible_a head_n remain_v as_o it_o do_v before_o enjoy_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n no_o other_o pretend_v thereto_o 4._o since_o the_o division_n of_o the_o east_n from_o the_o western_a church_n cause_v as_o i_o conceive_v upon_o a_o quarrel_n about_o the_o pope_n ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o not_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n the_o limit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n seem_v to_o be_v much_o straighten_v concern_v which_o schism_n if_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o schism_n proper_o so_o call_v i_o apprehend_v no_o necessity_n to_o be_v very_o curious_a to_o inform_v myself_o be_v persuade_v during_o the_o time_n of_o my_o be_v a_o protestant_n that_o as_o for_o that_o one_o point_n of_o belief_n concern_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n wherein_o the_o greek_a church_n express_v herself_o otherwise_o then_o the_o roman_a if_o in_o substance_n and_o sense_n there_o be_v a_o real_a difference_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v orthodox_n and_o beside_o that_o i_o know_v not_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o the_o greek_a church_n agree_v with_o protestant_n to_o condemn_v the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v true_a they_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n but_o i_o can_v never_o find_v that_o the_o greek_n make_v that_o point_n any_o pretext_n of_o their_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a neither_o indeed_o can_v they_o since_o they_o also_o give_v the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o sick_a only_o in_o one_o kind_n acknowledge_v withal_o that_o such_o communicant_n receive_v the_o whole_a effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o for_o the_o story_n of_o the_o schism_n it_o be_v begin_v by_o photius_n the_o pseudo-patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n upon_o ambition_n and_o interest_n because_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o confirm_v his_o illegal_a intrusion_n into_o that_o chair_n which_o general_o have_v be_v a_o fatal_a occasion_n of_o almost_o all_o schism_n as_o long_o since_o s._n cyprian_n have_v observe_v last_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o those_o right_n of_o jurisdiction_n also_o which_o since_o that_o schism_n have_v be_v deny_v by_o the_o greek_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o then_o begin_v to_o be_v demand_v but_o have_v be_v possess_v by_o he_o for_o several_a age_n so_o that_o there_o be_v at_o least_o injustice_n if_o not_o error_n on_o the_o grecian_n part_n 7._o four_o that_o the_o pope_n as_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o primacy_n and_o superiority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n yea_o a_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n so_o that_o he_o may_v true_o be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v deliver_v by_o so_o constant_a and_o universal_a a_o tradition_n that_o it_o can_v without_o extreme_a impudence_n be_v deny_v now_o how_o far_o this_o superiority_n and_o authority_n extend_v i_o think_v it_o needless_a curious_o to_o inform_v myself_o since_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v learn_v all_o that_o the_o church_n require_v in_o this_o point_n even_o from_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v a_o subscription_n to_o this_o profession_n mention_v in_o the_o bull_n of_o pope_n pius_n iv_o annex_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o collect_v out_o of_o the_o same_o viz._n romano_n pontifici_fw-la beati_fw-la petri_n apostolorum_fw-la principis_fw-la successori_fw-la ac_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la uicario_n veram_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la spondeo_fw-la ae_z juro_fw-la i_o e._n i_o do_v promise_n and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n successor_n of_o bless_a s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ._n 8._o now_o that_o thus_o much_o be_v of_o universal_a tradition_n what_o great_a proof_n can_v be_v desire_v then_o may_v be_v afford_v we_o in_o a_o late_a book_n entitle_v les_fw-fr grandeurs_fw-fr dell_n '_o eglise_fw-fr roman_a where_o such_o a_o world_n of_o testimony_n out_o of_o counsel_n occumenicall_a and_o provincial_n pope_n father_n both_o eastern_a and_o western_a history_n ecclesiastical_a etc._n etc._n be_v produce_v to_o maintain_v the_o co-union_n of_o s._n paul_n with_o s._n peter_n in_o at_o least_o some_o degree_n of_o his_o universal_a authority_n which_o not_o withstand_v be_v not_o a_o hundred_o part_n of_o that_o which_o may_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o antiquity_n for_o s._n peter_n principality_n and_o the_o pope_n as_o his_o successor_n yea_o that_o great_a council_n of_o chalce_v on_o acknowledge_v and_o receive_v in_o england_n even_o when_o it_o endeavour_v to_o deprive_v the_o pope_n of_o some_o part_n of_o jurisdiction_n yet_o acknowledge_v this_o his_o superiority_n and_o authority_n as_o pope_n the_o bishop_n there_o call_v he_o their_o head_n and_o themselves_o with_o all_o christian_n member_n under_o that_o head_n moreover_o socrates_n and_o zozoman_n writer_n far_o from_o be_v partial_a for_o the_o pope_n yet_o mention_v ancient_a immemoriall_n canon_n of_o the_o church_n 10._o wherein_o at_o least_o a_o negative_a voice_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o any_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v introduce_v to_o oblige_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o conclude_v mounseur_fw-fr blondel_n the_o most_o learned_a french_a controvertist_n that_o ever_o undertake_v their_o common_a quarrel_n against_o the_o pope_n in_o that_o large_a volume_n which_o be_v spend_v in_o confute_v particular_a extravagant_a opinion_n concern_v that_o subject_n as_o touch_v the_o infallibility_n and_o monarchical_a omnipotence_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o lordly_a and_o domineer_a headship_n and_o a_o monarchical_a power_n usurp_v by_o he_o by_o which_o to_o subdue_v all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n yet_o notwithstanding_o which_o be_v very_o remarkable_a he_o confess_v himself_o that_o never_o any_o council_n or_o nation_n 107._o no_o not_o that_o of_o florence_n nor_o trent_n itself_o ever_o adventure_v to_o define_v any_o thing_n concern_v such_o excessive_a title_n and_o power_n as_o the_o pope_n partisan_n do_v attribute_n to_o he_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o title_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v put_v in_o debate_n since_o that_o the_o grecian_n and_o protestant_n also_o do_v confess_v that_o it_o have_v beone_fw-mi believe_v and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v indeed_o that_o he_o be_v the_o precedent_n and_o head_n or_o chief_n chef_fw-fr of_o the_o apostle_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o possessor_n of_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yea_o moreover_o that_o rome_n as_o be_v a_o church_n consecrate_v by_o the_o residence_n and_o martyrdom_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o antiquity_n have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o head_n chef_fw-fr of_o the_o college_n apostolic_a have_v be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n may_v without_o difficulty_n be_v consider_v by_o one_o of_o the_o most_o renown_a counsel_n viz._n that_o of_o chalcedon_n as_o head_n chef_fw-fr of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v the_o pope_n primacy_n and_o authority_n be_v orthodox_n 9_o upon_o which_o ground_n since_o it_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o remain_v visible_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v a_o church_n possess_v of_o all_o substantial_a christian_a doctrine_n preserve_v in_o all_o truth_n govern_v by_o lawful_a pastor_n as_o one_o body_n consist_v of_o rule_v and_o rule_v member_n under_o one_o visible_a head_n which_o s._n cyprian_n make_v the_o foundation_n of_o unity_n ecclesiastical_a i_o conclude_v as_o i_o think_v rational_o that_o that_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o continue_v in_o communion_n with_o and_o obedience_n to_o this_o so_o acknowledge_v supreme_a authority_n might_n and_o ought_v most_o just_o to_o challenge_v the_o title_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 10._o therefore_o though_o the_o privilege_n of_o a_o independent_a patriarchall_a church_n which_o the_o english_a protestant_n
the_o substance_n of_o the_o three_o first_o of_o which_o be_v this_o because_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o indulgence_n now_o in_o use_n in_o the_o church_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v ancient_o practise_v as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n express_o say_v now_o say_v he_o we_o find_v no_o other_o indulgence_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o counsel_n but_o such_o as_o we_o have_v mention_v again_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o add_v this_o particle_n to_o the_o indulgence_n give_v de_fw-fr pooeitentiis_fw-la injunctis_fw-la since_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o church_n have_v so_o wary_o express_v herself_o it_o will_v be_v temerarious_a to_o interpret_v her_o meaning_n otherwise_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v strong_o maintain_v likewise_o by_o estius_n in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 20._o ●_o 10._o 9_o in_o the_o next_o place_n concern_v the_o condition_n require_v to_o receive_v benefit_n by_o indulgence_n all_o catholic_n agree_v that_o these_o three_o be_v necessary_a 1._o authority_n in_o he_o that_o grant_v they_o 2._o a_o just_a reason_n for_o the_o grant_v they_o 3._o due_a disposition_n in_o the_o party_n receive_v they_o now_o for_o this_o last_o point_n card._n cajetan_n as_o he_o be_v quote_v by_o bellarmine_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr indulg_n c._n 12._o maintain_v that_o beside_o the_o condition_n of_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o accomplish_v the_o action_n ordain_v for_o the_o gain_n of_o indulgence_n there_o be_v a_o three_o condition_n necessary_a to_o he_o that_o will_v receive_v fruit_n by_o they_o which_o be_v that_o he_o have_v a_o will_v to_o satisfy_v god_n by_o his_o own_o labour_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v and_o that_o indulgence_n be_v of_o no_o profit_n to_o those_o who_o will_v not_o satisfy_v for_o themselves_o when_o they_o can_v from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o in_o such_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o person_n that_o visit_v the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o solemn_a station_n and_o the_o like_a indulgence_n there_o be_v but_o very_o few_o that_o reap_v the_o profit_n of_o they_o iudeed_o this_o opinion_n say_v bellarmine_n be_v profitable_a and_o pious_a though_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o true_a but_o since_o card_n bellarmine_n the_o learned_a estius_n chancellor_n of_o douai_n profess_v his_o belief_n that_o this_o opinion_n be_v not_o only_o profitable_a and_o pious_a but_o very_o true_a see_v his_o comment_n in_o 2._o ep._n ad_fw-la cor._n cap._n 2._o v._n 11._o as_o likewise_o in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 20._o sect._n 10._o the_o like_a be_v strong_o maintain_v by_o comitolus_n a_o learned_a jesuit_n in_o resp._n moral_a q._n 36._o who_o confirm_v his_o opinion_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o antisiodorensis_n henricus_fw-la à_fw-la gandavo_fw-la adrian_n vi_o boniface_n viii_o sylvester_n etc._n etc._n now_o the_o aforesaid_a author_n who_o teach_v that_o indulgence_n be_v only_a relaxation_n from_o penance_n enjoin_v vel_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la vel_fw-la à._fw-la canone_o do_v not_o therefore_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v satisfaction_n only_o to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o god_n for_o maldonate_fw-it express_o declare_v the_o contrary_a in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o forecited_a place_n cum_fw-la injungitur_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o the_o church_n enjoin_v any_o penance_n she_o enjoin_v it_o not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o such_o a_o penance_n we_o shall_v satisfy_v the_o church_n but_o god_n also_o now_o the_o indulgence_n be_v answerable_a unto_o the_o penance_n enjoin_v and_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v grant_v we_o not_o only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o this_o penalty_n shall_v be_v remit_v we_o before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n but_o before_o god_n tribunal_n likewise_o and_o from_o thence_o he_o conclude_v that_o though_o indulgence_n do_v regard_v direct_o only_a penance_n which_o be_v enjoin_v to_o be_v accomplish_v in_o this_o world_n notwithstanding_o they_o do_v consequent_o deliver_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n likewise_o for_o say_v he_o since_o god_n do_v not_o punish_v the_o same_o fault_n twice_o and_o since_o the_o penalty_n which_o man_n pay_v in_o purgatory_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v pay_v in_o this_o world_n if_o the_o church_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o indulgence_n do_v remit_v the_o penalty_n which_o in_o this_o life_n be_v due_a to_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o she_o remit_v likewise_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v due_a in_o purgatory_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o those_o live_a person_n to_o who_o such_o indulgence_n be_v grant_v ought_v otherwise_o to_o suffer_v in_o purgatory_n now_o whether_o this_o doctrine_n deserve_v a_o separation_n let_v all_o reasonable_a moderate_a christian_n judge_n of_o public_a service_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n 8._o this_o be_v a_o matter_n which_o concern_v only_o the_o outward_a order_n and_o decorum_n of_o the_o church_n an_o whereof_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n be_v only_o to_o be_v judge_n and_o disposer_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o excess_n or_o inconvenience_n they_o only_o be_v answerable_a before_o almighty_a god_n particular_a person_n be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o it_o indeed_o if_o the_o church_n have_v appoint_v her_o service_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n on_o purpose_n that_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o understand_v it_o or_o if_o she_o have_v decree_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n unlawful_a that_o any_o body_n shall_v praise_v god_n with_o the_o understanding_n but_o only_a priest_n and_o bishop_n and_o learned_a man_n protestant_n may_v have_v some_o pretence_n for_o their_o clamour_n in_o this_o regard_n but_o 1._o since_o the_o church_n find_v her_o liturgy_n in_o the_o same_o tongue_n through_o all_o the_o western_a world_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n 2._o since_o no_o example_n can_v be_v find_v in_o any_o ancient_a church_n jewish_a or_o christian_a eastern_a or_o western_a that_o the_o language_n of_o public_a service_n have_v be_v alter_v though_o those_o of_o the_o country_n have_v be_v insomuch_o as_o in_o our_o saviour_n time_n the_o jewish_a devotion_n be_v perform_v in_o hebrew_n when_o the_o people_n only_o understand_v the_o syrian_a tongue_n so_o the_o cophtite_n so_o the_o aethiopian_o and_o so_o the_o jew_n to_o this_o day_n 3._o since_o it_o be_v apparent_o both_o of_o great_a comeliness_n and_o benefit_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o uniformity_n in_o god_n public_a worship_n so_o as_o that_o wheresoever_o a_o christian_a travel_n he_o may_v as_o well_o join_v himself_o with_o other_o christian_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o when_o he_o stay_v at_o home_n 4._o since_o particular_o for_o the_o mass_n the_o great_a part_n of_o it_o from_o all_o antiquity_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o low_a voice_n by_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n the_o people_n neither_o hear_n nor_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n see_v he_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o vail_n or_o curtain_n which_o be_v draw_v between_o the_o altar_n &_o the_o people_n except_v only_o at_o some_o certain_a peculiar_a time_n as_o at_o the_o elevation_n etc._n etc._n 5._o since_o the_o church_n permit_v the_o translate_n and_o publish_n of_o her_o liturgy_n since_o she_o command_v the_o priest_n to_o explain_v and_o inculcate_v unto_o the_o people_n the_o meaning_n of_o all_o mystery_n and_o since_o she_o furnish_v even_o the_o most_o ignorant_a person_n with_o devotion_n suitable_a to_o their_o capacity_n and_o far_o more_o beneficial_a to_o they_o then_o the_o hear_v the_o psalm_n and_o other_o part_n of_o scripture_n read_v so_o difficult_a and_o abstruse_a that_o even_o the_o most_o learned_a must_v confess_v their_o inability_n to_o comprehend_v they_o last_o since_o a_o indiscreet_a promiscuous_a expose_v of_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o so_o many_o inconvenience_n a_o better_a though_o sad_a proof_n whereof_o can_v be_v give_v then_o in_o the_o present_a state_n of_o england_n where_o every_o one_o read_v scripture_n and_o all_o visible_a authority_n of_o interpret_n it_o so_o as_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v such_o interpretation_n be_v disclaim_v every_o one_o of_o those_o infinite_a number_n of_o sect_n believe_v that_o they_o find_v in_o scripture_n sufficient_a warrant_n for_o all_o such_o horrible_a sedition_n and_o murder_n as_o have_v late_o be_v commit_v there_o therefore_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v esteem_v it_o a_o thing_n befit_v her_o wisdom_n to_o continue_v a_o uniformity_n in_o her_o public_a worship_n receive_v from_o our_o father_n and_o her_o care_n and_o charity_n to_o appoint_v respective_o to_o every_o condition_n and_o state_n of_o christian_n their_o proper_a allowance_n and_o dimensum_fw-la of_o spiritual_a food_n and_o to_o imitate_v our_o saviour_n who_o will_v not_o reveal_v even_o to_o his_o apostle_n themselves_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o
most_o perfect_a will_n of_o god_n by_o which_o in_o time_n there_o be_v make_v a_o perfect_a denudation_n mortification_n and_o annihilation_n of_o a_o man_n own_o private_a will_n and_o a_o suffer_a one_o self_n to_o be_v enact_v and_o move_v immediate_o by_o almighty_a god_n and_o at_o last_o a_o contemplation_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n without_o any_o medium_n without_o all_o help_n of_o grosser_n imaginary_a form_n a_o absorption_n of_o all_o operation_n call_v by_o they_o a_o divine_a idleness_n whereby_o the_o soul_n repose_v secure_o and_o with_o unspeakable_a pleasure_n in_o the_o bosom_n of_o her_o heavenly_a bridegroom_n i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o strange_a effect_n outward_a and_o respect_v the_o body_n as_o elevation_n ecstasy_n etc._n etc._n which_o though_o admire_v at_o by_o other_o yet_o be_v neglect_v and_o even_o pray_v against_o by_o spiritual_a person_n themselves_o 6._o now_o to_o prove_v that_o these_o be_v neither_o dream_n of_o ignorant_a soul_n nor_o sublime_a extravagance_n of_o soar_a spirit_n we_o may_v consider_v that_o 1._o the_o great_a understanding_n that_o many_o of_o the_o last_o age_n have_v bring_v forth_o as_o s._n bernard_n s._n thomas_n aquinas_n s._n bonaventure_n and_o i._o picus_n count_n of_o mirandula_n &c._n &c._n have_v all_o write_v uniform_o upon_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o have_v show_v clear_o that_o what_o they_o write_v be_v not_o mere_a speculation_n but_o comprehend_v practise_v and_o feel_v by_o they_o 2._o that_o even_o the_o mean_a capacity_n have_v arrive_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o contemplation_n as_o s._n isidore_n a_o plain_a husbandman_n in_o spain_n s._n teresa_n s._n catherine_n of_o sienna_n and_o of_o genoa_n silly_a ignorant_a woman_n &_o that_o unparalleled_a young_a eremite_n gregorio_n lopez_n insomuch_o as_o whosoever_o shall_v with_o a_o true_a resignation_n &_o pure_a intention_n enter_v into_o this_o life_n of_o the_o spirit_n though_o his_o understanding_n be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v he_o entertainment_n for_o meditation_n yea_o though_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o help_v himself_o with_o read_v other_o yet_o if_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o catholic_a faith_n he_o humble_o &_o constant_o move_v his_o will_n to_o frame_v cordial_o act_v of_o love_n and_o resignation_n etc._n etc._n to_o god_n even_o such_o a_o man_n or_o woman_n shall_v not_o fail_v to_o arrive_v it_o may_v be_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o union_n than_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o skilful_a doctor_n even_o to_o that_o perfection_n of_o which_o s._n paul_n speak_v crucifigor_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la &_o vivo_fw-la jaem_fw-la non_fw-la ego_fw-la sed_fw-la vivit_fw-la in_o i_o christus_fw-la i_o e._n i_o be_o crucify_v with_o christ_n and_o i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o 3._o to_o the_o end_n to_o be_v secure_a of_o delusion_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o whereas_o in_o other_o sect_n ●●●re_v be_v certain_a counterfeiting_n of_o such_o a_o mystical_a familiarity_n with_o god_n join_v with_o strange_a motion_n and_o effect_n as_o awong_v the_o anabaptist_n famulist_n quaker_n ranvers_n etc._n etc._n strange_a example_n whereof_o in_o the_o last_o age_n we_o may_v read_v in_o florimundus_n raemundus_n yet_o now_o daily_o outdo_v by_o those_o sect_n in_o england_n as_o at_o malton_n in_o yorkshire_n london_n and_o other_o place_n where_o they_o abound_v yet_o such_o illumination_n discover_v their_o black_a author_n in_o that_o the_o person_n be_v far_o from_o be_v cleanse_v of_o their_o carnal_a lust_n pride_n malice_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o design_n appear_v common_o to_o be_v the_o trouble_v the_o world_n with_o some_o new_a pretend_a revelation_n and_o reformation_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o among_o spiritual_a person_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o inseparable_a qualification_n for_o contemplation_n be_v a_o deep_a humility_n a_o most_o tender_a charity_n and_o love_n of_o catholic_a unity_n 4._o lest_o a_o suspicion_n shall_v arise_v that_o this_o mystical_a theology_n and_o doctrine_n of_o contemplation_n shall_v be_v a_o invention_n of_o religious_a order_n to_o magnify_v themselves_o in_o the_o world_n opinion_n as_o have_v mean_n to_o a_o near_a approach_n to_o almighty_a god_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n we_o may_v consider_v both_o that_o the_o same_o rule_n for_o substance_n be_v find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n as_o s._n d●onisius_n aroopagita_n s_o augustine_n s._n basil_n joannes_n cassianus_n s._n hierome_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o even_o those_o most_o active_a father_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n have_v notwithstanding_o attain_v to_o a_o great_a perfection_n of_o contemplation_n yea_o that_o in_o this_o last_o age_n there_o have_v not_o appear_v any_o more_o perfect_a therein_o than_o those_o two_o famous_a bishop_n viz._n b._n francis_n de_fw-fr sales_n bishop_n of_o geneva_n and_o s._n charles_n barromée_n that_o most_o unwearied_a solicitous_a archbishop_n of_o milan_n and_o cardinal_n and_o antonio_n de_fw-fr roias_n a_o spanish_a secular_a priest_n though_o withal_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o a_o retreat_n and_o disengagement_n from_o the_o world_n solitude_n silence_n and_o other_o austerity_n be_v very_o powerful_a and_o effectual_a disposition_n thereto_o but_o concern_v mystical_a theology_n i_o shall_v refer_v those_o that_o desire_v further_a information_n to_o the_o write_n of_o thaulerus_n harphius_n rusbrochius_n the_o bishop_n of_o geneva_n s._n teresa_n and_o many_o other_o particular_o the_o several_a treatise_n as_o yet_o manuscript_n of_o that_o late_a very_o sublime_a contemplative_a f._n augustine_n baker_n a_o monk_n of_o our_o english_a congregation_n of_o the_o holy_a order_n of_o s._n benet_n the_o yet_o imperfect_a sum_n of_o who_o methodical_a instruction_n concern_v internal_a prayer_n have_v happy_o meet_v withal_o at_o rome_n i_o find_v myself_o press_v to_o hasten_v my_o reconcilement_n to_o the_o church_n because_o i_o thirst_v to_o become_v capable_a of_o practise_v those_o heavenly_a instruction_n and_o afterward_o in_o france_n but_o especial_o in_o my_o passage_n through_o cambray_n have_v see_v many_o more_o of_o the_o same_o author_n write_n the_o spirit_n of_o which_o do_v eminent_o show_v itself_o in_o the_o life_n of_o those_o excellent_o devout_a and_o perfect_o religious_a benedictine_n dame_n there_o and_o be_v by_o they_o inform_v which_o within_o a_o few_o day_n my_o own_o eye_n assure_v i_o of_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v receive_v and_o practise_v by_o their_o father_n at_o douai_n i_o present_o contrary_a to_o all_o my_o former_a resolution_n to_o dispose_v myself_o only_o among_o stranger_n in_o a_o religious_a life_n determine_v to_o fix_v myself_o at_o douai_n i_o forbear_v in_o the_o former_a impression_n to_o mention_v this_o author_n among_o the_o rest_n because_o i_o think_v his_o book_n be_v confine_v to_o cambray_n where_o they_o be_v write_v or_o to_o his_o own_o convent_n at_o dowvy_n but_o be_v since_o assure_v that_o they_o be_v large_o disperse_v even_o among_o the_o secular_a clergy_n i_o can_v not_o without_o ingratitude_n now_o omit_v his_o name_n and_o i_o hope_v that_o ever_o long_o a_o full_a account_n of_o his_o spiritual_a instruction_n concern_v the_o several_a degree_n of_o internal_a prayer_n shall_v be_v happy_o communicate_v to_o the_o world_n methodical_o digest_v &_o authoritative_o publish_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o great_a advancement_n of_o devout_a soul_n in_o his_o divine_a love_n 7._o for_o my_o present_a purpose_n it_o will_v suffice_v that_o by_o that_o short_a enquiry_n i_o make_v i_o satisfy_v myself_o that_o in_o no_o other_o congregation_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n only_o be_v to_o be_v find_v either_o rule_n in_o writing_n or_o live_a director_n for_o a_o true_a spiritual_a life_n in_o any_o comparison_n approach_v to_o those_o before_o name_v insomuch_o as_o i_o have_v often_o wonder_v why_o protestant_n will_v not_o at_o least_o borrow_v and_o transcribe_v such_o write_n for_o their_o own_o use_n and_o practice_v and_o all_o that_o i_o can_v say_v for_o answer_v to_o myself_o be_v 1._o that_o according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o father_n spiritus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la i_o e._n the_o holy_a spirit_n reside_v not_o any_o where_o out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v disperse_v not_o his_o extraordinary_a favour_n and_o sublime_a gift_n any_o where_o else_o 2._o because_o protestant_a religion_n etc._n etc._n renounce_v all_o evangelicall_n counsel_n of_o perfection_n as_o voluntary_a poverty_n chastity_n etc._n etc._n and_o their_o avarice_n have_v swallow_v all_o the_o revenue_n which_o nourish_v man_n in_o a_o solitary_a life_n of_o meditation_n and_o contemplation_n they_o both_o want_v such_o effectual_a help_n thereto_o and_o dare_v not_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v censure_v as_o half-catholiques_a commend_v or_o practice_v the_o mean_n proper_a and_o conduce_v to_o it_o
equal_o very_o artificial_a and_o very_a natural_a 6._o thus_o much_o of_o the_o preface_n therefore_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v unanswerable_a the_o design_n of_o all_o that_o follow_v be_v 1._o to_o show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v of_o all_o other_o most_o general_a and_o comprehensive_a and_o which_o if_o it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v will_v immediate_o decide_v all_o other_o controversy_n 2._o that_o therefore_o none_o can_v serious_o think_v protestant_n so_o unreasonable_a but_o that_o if_o they_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o they_o will_v present_o submit_v and_o leave_v all_o dispute_v 3._o but_o yet_o since_o it_o seem_v evident_a to_o they_o that_o some_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o scripture_n which_o catholic_n propound_v as_o infallible_o true_a therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o infallibility_n ought_v to_o be_v demonstrate_v at_o least_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o evidence_n than_o they_o have_v of_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o church_n decision_n to_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o god_n word_n 4._o that_o no_o such_o demonstration_n have_v be_v make_v by_o catholic_n the_o great_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v very_o excellent_o and_o full_o demonstrate_v 5._o and_o this_o with_o such_o success_n that_o the_o very_a name_n of_o infallibility_n begin_v to_o be_v burdensome_a even_o to_o the_o maintainer_n of_o it_o in_o so_o much_o that_o one_o of_o their_o late_a and_o able_a proselyte_n hugh_n paulin_n de_fw-fr cressy_n as_o the_o author_n style_v he_o which_o be_v a_o title_n that_o the_o same_o serenus_n cressy_n for_o that_o be_v henceforth_o his_o name_n assume_v in_o religion_n utter_o renounce_v &_o be_v most_o certain_a the_o author_n can_v never_o justify_v against_o such_o a_o world_n of_o much_o more_o able_a proselyte_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o same_o word_n infallibility_n to_o be_v a_o unfortunate_a word_n and_o too_o advantageous_a to_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o be_v forget_v and_o lay_v by_o whereupon_o the_o author_n give_v scope_n to_o a_o fit_a of_o triumph_v at_o the_o strength_n of_o reason_n and_o power_n of_o truth_n that_o a_o catholic_a be_v force_v or_o renounce_v so_o fundamental_a a_o doctrine_n which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o council_n etc._n etc._n 6._o now_o lest_o it_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o be_v only_o the_o word_n infallibility_n but_o not_o the_o notion_n of_o it_o intend_v by_o catholic_n and_o understand_v by_o protestant_n that_o be_v desert_v by_o mr._n cressy_n the_o author_n say_v that_o protestant_n never_o impugn_a it_o by_o nominal_a argument_n produce_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o bellarmine_n to_o justify_v the_o acknowledge_a sense_n of_o that_o word_n 7._o hereupon_o the_o author_n impute_v to_o mr._n cressy_a unreasonableness_n in_o answer_v argument_n make_v against_o that_o which_o himself_o confess_v can_v be_v maintain_v 8._o and_o yet_o great_a unreasonableness_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o answer_n because_o desert_v infallibility_n he_o answer_v only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o make_v this_o authority_n answer_v for_o that_o infallibility_n from_o this_o last_o he_o draw_v three_o consequent_a absurdity_n which_o shall_v be_v set_v down_o when_o their_o place_n come_v to_o be_v answer_v 9_o hereupon_o he_o profesles_fw-mi that_o have_v consider_v the_o inconsiderablenesse_n of_o m._n cressy_n whole_a discourse_n he_o change_v his_o resolution_n to_o answer_v it_o as_o judge_v it_o not_o to_o deserve_v a_o answer_n 10._o and_o last_o he_o conclude_v the_o invinciblenesse_n of_o my_o l._n falkland_n discourse_n of_o infallibility_n 7._o this_o be_v the_o mind_n and_o whole_a importance_n of_o the_o preface_n which_o whether_o rational_a or_o no_o shall_v be_v examine_v but_o it_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v orderly_o enough_o and_o therefore_o shall_v be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v answer_v according_a to_o its_o order_n and_o the_o paragraph_n and_o division_n make_v by_o i_o not_o himself_o chap._n iu._n a_o answer_n to_o the_o four_o first_o paragraph_n of_o the_o preface_n 1._o that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n say_v in_o his_o first_o paragraph_n viz._n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o churhe_n infallibility_n be_v of_o all_o other_o most_o general_a and_o comprehensive_a and_o which_o if_o it_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v will_v immediate_o decide_v all_o other_o controversy_n be_v so_o conformable_a to_o evident_a reason_n that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v and_o that_o which_o reason_n require_v of_o i_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o first_o paragraph_n charity_n will_v invite_v i_o to_o grant_v universal_o in_o the_o second_o viz._n that_o if_o protestant_n be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o they_o will_v present_o submit_v and_o leave_v all_o dispute_v be_v it_o not_o that_o i._o p._n himself_o discourage_v i_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o both_o himself_o and_o many_o other_o if_o they_o be_v absolute_o convince_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n will_v not_o wilful_o detain_v the_o truth_n in_o unrighteousness_n by_o continue_v in_o a_o obstinate_a and_o then_o a_o acknowledge_a disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n but_o they_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o if_o they_o be_v afraid_a to_o find_v it_o they_o come_v with_o extreme_a prejudice_n and_o partiality_n to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o controversy_n and_o if_o they_o can_v find_v but_o any_o small_a advantage_n against_o any_o passage_n in_o catholic_a writer_n though_o the_o church_n doctrine_n be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o it_o they_o present_o give_v the_o cause_n decide_v according_a to_o their_o own_o mind_n and_o interest_n which_o partiality_n of_o they_o seem_v much_o more_o intense_a and_o withal_o heighten_v with_o f●●_n great_a passion_n since_o the_o downfall_n of_o their_o church_n then_o ever_o it_o be_v before_o for_o indignation_n to_o see_v the_o extreme_a weakness_n of_o their_o cause_n imbitter_v they_o much_o more_o in_o their_o dispute_n against_o catholic_n and_o increase_v their_o obstinacy_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n church_n as_o if_o they_o will_v be_v revenge_v against_o god_n for_o give_v such_o a_o advantage_n to_o his_o church_n proof_n of_o this_o give_v by_o too_o many_o other_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o whole_a contexture_n of_o this_o preface_n as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v 2._o three_o j._n p._n say_v that_o since_o it_o seem_v evident_a to_o they_o that_o some_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n be_v contradictory_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o catholic_n propound_v as_o infallible_o true_a therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o infallibility_n ought_v to_o be_v demonstrate_v at_o least_o to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o evidence_n than_o they_o have_v of_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o church_n decision_n to_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n true_o this_o be_v not_o altogether_o unreasonable_a therefore_o to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n i_o will_v fix_v a_o good_a while_n upon_o this_o point_n though_o i_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o say_v over_o somewhat_o say_v already_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o precedent_a book_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o clear_v the_o controversy_n of_o infallibility_n as_o it_o be_v there_o handle_v from_o the_o mistake_v of_o j._n p._n and_o to_o effect_v this_o more_o prosperous_o i_o will_v peruse_v this_o supposition_n 3._o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v pretend_v to_o a_o infallibility_n or_o if_o you_o will_v to_o a_o authority_n of_o oblige_v all_o christian_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o submit_v to_o her_o decision_n this_o be_v suppose_v and_o that_o i_o desirous_a to_o inquire_v into_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o pretention_n shall_v betake_v myself_o to_o a_o meeting_n of_o several_a learned_a protestant_n and_o say_v to_o they_o since_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a that_o all_o christian_n shall_v receive_v information_n in_o christian_a doctrine_n from_o you_o pray_v let_v i_o know_v where_o i_o shall_v find_v it_o this_o request_n will_v present_o raise_v a_o murmur_n among_o they_o and_o there_o be_v only_o one_o answer_n in_o which_o they_o will_v all_o agree_v which_o be_v this_o that_o that_o only_o be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o english_a bishop_n ratify_v by_o the_o secular_a head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o king_n yet_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o embrace_v by_o all_o the_o child_n and_o subject_n of_o the_o english_a church_n but_o when_o they_o will_v descend_v more_o particular_o to_o signify_v the_o special_a repository_n of_o this_o doctrine_n there_o will_v be_v great_a variety_n of_o answer_n for_o the_o most_o moderate_a of_o they_o will_v
infallibility_n he_o do_v ill_a and_o even_o envious_o to_o their_o glory_n that_o he_o do_v not_o name_v those_o worthy_n for_o my_o part_n beside_o the_o noble_a author_n of_o the_o follow_a discourse_n who_o certain_o he_o mean_v for_o one_o and_o by_o consequence_n mr._n chillingworth_n i_o can_v remember_v that_o ever_o i_o hear_v any_o great_a elogium_fw-la in_o this_o respect_n give_v to_o any_o english_a writer_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v he_o may_v have_v a_o eye_n upon_o the_o last_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o his_o late_a enlarge_a dialogue_n which_o if_o he_o do_v than_o i_o conjure_v i._n p._n that_o he_o will_v once_o more_o peruse_v the_o say_v archbishop_n discourse_n and_o single_a from_o it_o whatsoever_o be_v impertinent_a to_o the_o main_a essential_a controversy_n that_o be_v whatsoever_o touch_v particular_a debate_n of_o catholic_n about_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n and_o the_o exception_n that_o may_v be_v find_v against_o certain_a counsel_n as_o likewise_o about_o the_o several_a quality_n and_o condition_n require_v to_o a_o acknowledge_v oblige_v council_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o last_o that_o lay_v aside_o all_o these_o unnecessary_a velitation_n he_o will_v apply_v the_o archbishop_n most_o efficatious_a argument_n to_o a_o ecumenical_a confirm_a council_n especial_o if_o he_o will_v add_v the_o condition_n too_o of_o be_v actual_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o my_o life_n for_o he_o he_o will_v see_v reason_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o all_o that_o discourse_n be_v of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o against_o the_o church_n yea_o that_o the_o archbishop_n himself_o never_o intend_v it_o shall_v however_o the_o calvinist_n or_o fantastical_a private_a spiritist_n or_o exalter_n of_o humane_a reason_n may_v deal_v against_o the_o universal_a authority_n of_o god_n church_n the_o prelate_n of_o england_n be_v too_o wise_a to_o judge_v that_o people_n will_v be_v so_o blind_a as_o to_o think_v any_o obedience_n can_v be_v due_a out_o of_o conscience_n to_o a_o national_a church_n begin_v and_o continue_v upon_o secular_a and_o indeed_o unlawful_a interest_n if_o that_o church_n shall_v build_v its_o authority_n upon_o a_o profession_n of_o renounce_v all_o authority_n and_o therefore_o though_o they_o be_v very_o earnest_a in_o the_o controversy_n about_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n when_o they_o be_v to_o write_v or_o proceed_v juridical_o against_o presbyterian_o or_o separatist_n yet_o they_o love_v not_o to_o talk_v of_o it_o against_o the_o catholic_n church_n yea_o it_o be_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n only_a that_o they_o borrow_v their_o argument_n against_o their_o schismatic_n as_o may_v in_o a_o good_a measure_n appear_v in_o the_o print_a reason_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o covenant_n negative_a oath_n and_o ordinance_n concern_v discipline_n and_o worship_n approve_v by_o general_a consent_n in_o a_o full_a convocation_n june_n 1._o 1647_o and_o it_o be_v under_o the_o shadow_n of_o their_o pretence_n to_o be_v still_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o to_o have_v receive_v their_o authority_n and_o succession_n from_o it_o that_o they_o oblige_v good_a easy_a protestant_n to_o continue_v their_o subject_n but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o guess_n that_o i._o p._n in_o this_o passage_n reflect_v upon_o the_o late_a archbishop_n or_o any_o other_o english_a prelatical_a writer_n 13._o certain_a it_o be_v he_o must_v intend_v my_o lord_n falkland_n as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a defender_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o he_o speak_v this_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o discourse_n of_o infallibility_n and_o with_o a_o evident_a design_n thereby_o to_o recommend_v both_o the_o author_n and_o his_o work_n this_o be_v so_o i._n p._n will_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n o_o the_o strength_n of_o reason_n right_o manage_v o_o the_o power_n of_o truth_n clear_o declare_v yea_o o_o the_o force_n of_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n for_o what_o else_o but_o the_o irresistible_a power_n of_o truth_n and_o evidence_n of_o reason_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o guilt_n can_v move_v he_o so_o public_o to_o condemn_v his_o own_o church_n and_o to_o confess_v its_o ●surpation_n impossible_a to_o be_v justify_v behold_v o_o protestant_n how_o your_o church_n be_v defend_v here_o be_v a_o discourse_n that_o undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v and_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v your_o brother_n i._o p._n have_v admirable_o and_o unanswerable_o perform_v it_o that_o upon_o earth_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v any_o guide_n that_o can_v oblige_v any_o other_o to_o follow_v his_o direction_n and_o that_o every_o man_n conscience_n be_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o his_o own_o single_a natural_a reason_n choose_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o nature_n and_o hold_v it_o only_o so_o long_o as_o nature_n like_v it_o and_o then_o change_v it_o for_o another_o in_o fine_a a_o discourse_n that_o give_v you_o leave_v yea_o almost_o invite_v you_o to_o return_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o old_a philosopher_n those_o epoptes_n and_o priest_n of_o nature_n if_o there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o this_o your_o defender_n discourse_v what_o become_v of_o your_o article_n and_o canon_n your_o synod_n and_o convocation_n your_o infallible_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o proclamation_n it_o be_v evident_a he_o may_v as_o well_o yea_o more_fw-it reasonable_o have_v say_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v a_o great_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o that_o indeed_o justify_v ecclesiastical_a authority_n whereas_o this_o discourse_n direct_o and_o purposely_o and_o universal_o destroy_v it_o but_o the_o meaning_n or_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o i._o p._n be_v this_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v maintain_v for_o if_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n avow_v there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n appointment_n any_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a oblige_v in_o conscience_n it_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v not_o inherent_a in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o begin_v but_o yesterday_o and_o be_v not_o now_o at_o all_o and_o when_o it_o begin_v it_o begin_v by_o the_o renounce_n of_o all_o visible_a authority_n again_o if_o as_o this_o discourse_n pretend_v there_o be_v no_o oblige_a authority_n that_o be_v no_o infallible_a one_o for_o sure_o none_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o a_o authority_n that_o confess_v itself_o questionable_a then_o both_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v mere_a name_n and_o verbal_a sound_n that_o signify_v nothing_o this_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o be_v pity_n to_o insist_v long_o upon_o the_o persecute_v of_o good_a i._o p._n that_o here_o publish_v his_o conviction_n and_o confession_n and_o must_v either_o tear_v out_o this_o preface_n before_o such_o a_o discourse_n or_o abjure_v his_o church_n of_o england_n if_o ever_o it_o appear_v again_o 14._o by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v apparent_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n speak_v by_o a_o lawful_a ecumenical_a council_n be_v deliver_v by_o as_o full_a a_o tradition_n as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o doctrine_n to_o be_v deliver_v and_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v inexcusable_a and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d since_o receive_v such_o special_a book_n of_o scripture_n upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o tradition_n they_o yet_o renounce_v the_o church_n authority_n which_o be_v more_o universal_o and_o authoritative_o deliver_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o truth_n be_v unanswerable_o ground_v upon_o what_o have_v former_o be_v prove_v in_o this_o book_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o that_o which_o any_o one_o àge_n agree_v in_o as_o tradition_n shall_v not_o be_v so_o because_o that_o will_v argue_v that_o some_o former_a wh●le_a age_n have_v agree_v to_o deceive_v their_o posterity_n ob._n 15._o but_o perhaps_o i._n p._n or_o his_o friend_n will_v say_v that_o though_o what_o have_v be_v assert_v may_v be_v effectual_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n yet_o not_o so_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o roman_a be_v that_o infallible_a catholic_n church_n since_o the_o greek_n may_v put_v in_o their_o plea_n at_o least_o to_o be_v a_o very_a considerable_a part_n that_o they_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o universal_a church_n though_o she_o shall_v condemn_v they_o for_o though_o the_o importunate_a restless_a malice_n of_o some_o calvinistical_a spirit_n among_o they_o have_v procure_v some_o uncivil_a and_o indeed_o unchristian_a clause_n to_o be_v put_v into_o the_o english_a article_n derogate_a from_o the_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n yet_o the_o true_a english_a protestant_n have_v always_o be_v ready_a to_o protest_v submission_n to_o the_o
universal_a church_n but_o they_o be_v not_o satisfy_v that_o they_o owe_v that_o submission_n to_o the_o roman_a and_o if_o not_o to_o the_o roman_a they_o know_v not_o to_o what_o church_n sol._n 16._o to_o say_v something_o for_o the_o clear_n this_o difficulty_n i_o shall_v desire_v they_o to_o consider_v 1._o that_o whilst_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n be_v join_v in_o one_o external_n communion_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o that_o body_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o which_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v and_o to_o which_o protestant_n themselves_o will_v not_o have_v refuse_v submission_n 2._o that_o a_o breach_n happen_v between_o these_o church_n be_v not_o mortal_a to_o the_o whole_a body_n but_o only_o to_o that_o member_n that_o do_v unlawful_o separate_v 3._o by_o consequence_n that_o both_o the_o title_n and_o real_a authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n remain_v in_o the_o innocent_a part_n that_o be_v either_o in_o the_o roman_a or_o eastern_a church_n 4._o that_o whethersoever_o of_o these_o two_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n english_a protestant_n be_v schismatic_n since_o they_o be_v divide_v from_o both_o and_o the_o pretend_a ground_n of_o their_o division_n be_v doctrine_n receive_v by_o they_o both_o 5._o that_o in_o case_n english_a protestant_n will_v now_o take_v into_o debate_n to_o whether_o of_o these_o two_o party_n they_o shall_v re-adjoyn_a themselves_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o become_v catholic_n again_o they_o must_v be_v force_v to_o quit_v both_o a_o great_a number_n of_o their_o topical_a doctrine_n and_o more_o fundamental_a one_o to_o fit_v themselves_o to_o a_o union_n with_o the_o eastern_a then_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n 6._o that_o if_o they_o will_v needs_o out_o of_o passion_n prefer_v the_o eastern_a their_o passion_n will_v be_v evident_a since_o that_o whensoever_o either_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o the_o approach_n of_o death_n make_v they_o see_v their_o unsafe_a condition_n thousand_o of_o they_o have_v flee_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o shelter_n but_o never_o any_o to_o the_o grecian_a or_o any_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a 7._o that_o as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o be_v in_o a_o headless_a trunk_n divide_v from_o the_o successor_n of_o st._n pèter_n who_o st._n cyprian_n st._n hierome_n optatus_n etc._n etc._n acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o unity_n order_n etc._n etc._n ob._n 17._o now_o if_o among_o protestant_n any_o out_o of_o a_o perverse_a condescendence_n shall_v grant_v that_o the_o ground_n allege_v for_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o eastern_a &_o western_a church_n be_v not_o in_o themselves_o of_o such_o main_a importance_n as_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v real_o one_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o that_o before_o the_o present_a controversy_n can_v be_v decide_v a_o general_a assembly_n of_o they_o all_o must_v be_v expect_v sol._n 18._o to_o this_o they_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o say_v 1._o that_o they_o make_v the_o promise_v of_o christ_n to_o be_v casual_a temporary_a and_o obnoxious_a to_o critical_a day_n and_o season_n if_o they_o think_v that_o the_o change_n of_o kingdom_n or_o that_o the_o humour_n of_o a_o earthly_a tyrant_n can_v either_o evacuate_v or_o suspend_v the_o force_n of_o those_o promise_n by_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v oblige_v himself_o to_o provide_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o be_v heresy_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o his_o church_n the_o effect_n of_o which_o promise_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o such_o objector_n must_v be_v delay_v till_o the_o grand_a signior_n will_v allow_v the_o grecian_a bishop_n to_o meet_v with_o the_o western_a to_o consult_v of_o and_o procure_v the_o peace_n and_o union_n of_o christendom_n 2._o in_o case_n they_o shall_v be_v permit_v to_o meet_v protestant_n may_v without_o the_o spirit_n of_o pprophecy_n foretell_v their_o own_o most_o solemn_a condemnation_n for_o since_o both_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n do_v already_o agree_v in_o most_o doctrine_n renounce_v by_o protestant_n viz._n transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o by_o consequence_n a_o purgatory_n in_o which_o soul_n be_v capable_a of_o refreshment_n by_o such_o prayer_n veneration_n of_o image_n relic_n etc._n etc._n invocation_n of_o saint_n indulgence_n merit_n of_o good_a work_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o doctrine_n they_o do_v agree_v as_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v traditionary_a it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v ever_o be_v persuade_v to_o revoke_v any_o of_o they_o be_v meet_v in_o a_o assembly_n unless_o they_o will_v renounce_v all_o order_n and_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o former_a general_n counsel_n which_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o method_n of_o protestant_n viz._n endless_o to_o dispute_v every_o controvert_v point_n by_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o point_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o traditien_n in_o such_o assembly_n therefore_o bishop_n will_v ask_v one_o another_o have_v your_o father_n deliver_v to_o you_o that_o bread_n after_o consecration_n become_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o this_o body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o soul_n depart_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n &_o c._n if_o so_o servetur_fw-la quod_fw-la traditum_fw-la est_fw-la now_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o at_o the_o present_a all_o agree_v that_o such_o doctrine_n both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n have_v be_v deliver_v by_o tradition_n and_o that_o their_o meeting_n together_o in_o a_o council_n will_v not_o help_v to_o make_v a_o contrary_a tradition_n possible_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o whether_o divide_a or_o unite_v whether_o alone_o or_o in_o assembly_n they_o be_v and_o ever_o will_v be_v at_o least_o so_o far_o unite_v as_o to_o join_v in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o protestant_n chap._n v._n a_o answer_n to_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o preface_n 1._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o preface_n of_o i._o p._n touch_v myself_o only_o and_o pretend_v to_o show_v what_o success_n the_o write_n of_o those_o great_a defender_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v have_v against_o i_o in_o particular_a force_v i_o to_o confess_v that_o infallibility_n be_v a_o unfortunate_a word_n that_o mr._n chillingworth_n have_v combat_v it_o with_o too_o great_a success_n so_o that_o i_o will_v wish_v the_o word_n be_v forget_v or_o at_o least_o lay_v by_o etc._n etc._n now_o since_o the_o church_n be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v in_o this_o but_o myself_o only_o who_o be_o charge_v with_o write_v a_o incongruous_a impertinent_a book_n a_o book_n that_o deserve_v no_o answer_n but_o answer_v itself_o since_o it_o maintain_v that_o which_o its_o adversary_n do_v not_o combat_n etc._n etc._n true_o be_v it_o not_o for_o i._o p._n and_o his_o friend_n sake_n more_o than_o i_o own_o i_o will_v not_o answer_v for_o myself_o but_o since_o i_o perceive_v that_o the_o word_n infallibility_n be_v as_o unfortunate_a a_o word_n to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v to_o i_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o take_v order_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o no_o more_o 2._o first_o therefore_o i_o say_v with_o mr._n veron_n that_o the_o word_n infallibility_n have_v be_v find_v out_o by_o the_o school_n that_o love_n to_o find_v out_o as_o short_a way_n to_o express_v their_o notion_n as_o possible_o can_v be_v and_o the_o world_n find_v very_o great_a convenience_n by_o it_o therefore_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n schoolman_n and_o from_o they_o controvertist_n desirous_a to_o express_v the_o great_a veracity_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v as_o a_o judge_n or_o witness_v of_o divine_a truth_n depose_v by_o god_n with_o she_o and_o withal_o the_o utmost_a obligation_n that_o all_o christian_n have_v to_o believe_v truth_n so_o determine_v and_o witness_v by_o she_o find_v out_o this_o single_a word_n infallibility_n to_o express_v both_o these_o by_o but_o yet_o the_o church_n herself_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o assume_v or_o borrow_v this_o word_n in_o any_o of_o her_o decision_n from_o the_o school_n and_o therefore_o be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n word_n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o make_v she_o to_o speak_v it_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v though_o it_o comprehend_v all_o that_o they_o intend_v by_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o adequate_a measure_n of_o those_o conception_n because_o infallibility_n may_v comprehend_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o for_o truth_n and_o our_o obligation_n to_o believe_v it_o be_v yet_o in_o a_o high_a degree_n in_o scripture_n then_o in_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n as_o bellarmine_n acknowledge_v for_o the_o scripture_n in_o all_o point_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o story_n and_o all_o circumstance_n be_v infallible_o true_a not_o so_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o
church_n in_o which_o the_o simple_a conclusion_n decide_v be_v only_o account_v infallible_o true_a not_o so_o the_o principle_n upon_o which_o it_o depend_v or_o reason_n by_o which_o it_o be_v prove_v and_o much_o less_o be_v order_n make_v by_o counsel_n which_o depend_v upon_o information_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o can_v find_v a_o more_o energetical_a word_n to_o express_v the_o unquestionable_a and_o unappealable_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n than_o infallibility_n we_o may_v proceed_v further_o and_o say_v that_o divine_a truth_n reveal_v internal_o after_o a_o supernatural_a manner_n to_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o intellectual_a image_n be_v yet_o more_o infallible_a than_o the_o same_o truth_n reveal_v by_o word_n because_o word_n be_v but_o the_o image_n of_o image_n be_v further_o remove_v from_o that_o prime_a exemplar_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v god_n and_o beside_o be_v in_o themselves_o unavoidable_o ambiguous_a and_o so_o do_v not_o convey_v truth_n so_o infallible_o as_o internal_a illustration_n yet_o what_o can_v we_o say_v more_o of_o these_o then_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a last_o there_o be_v no_o image_n so_o perfect_a but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v a_o image_n it_o come_v short_a of_o the_o exemplar_n which_o be_v truth_n itself_o that_o be_v god_n and_o by_o consequence_n differ_v from_o it_o yet_o the_o supreme_a title_n that_o we_o can_v give_v to_o god_n himself_o in_o this_o regard_n be_v infallibility_n but_o to_o instance_n more_o familiar_a example_n of_o the_o several_a degree_n of_o infallibility_n i_o be_o infallible_o assure_v that_o i_o can_v repeat_v all_o the_o word_n i_o have_v speak_v this_o last_o year_n and_o yet_o i_o be_o more_o infallible_o assure_v that_o i_o can_v say_v over_o again_o all_z i_o have_v speak_v in_o my_o whole_a life_n i_o be_o infallible_o assure_v that_o if_o i_o throw_v a_o thousand_o dice_n they_o will_v not_o be_v all_o six_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o more_o infallible_o assure_v that_o the_o same_o cast_n upon_o so_o many_o dice_n can_v be_v a_o thousand_o time_n successive_o repeat_v of_o all_o these_o impossibility_n i_o have_v several_a degree_n of_o assurance_n and_o every_o degree_n in_o a_o certain_a sense_n infallible_a but_o in_o a_o severe_a acception_n of_o that_o word_n the_o very_o high_a be_v not_o rigorous_o infallible_a because_o none_o of_o the_o case_n allege_v be_v absolute_o impossible_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o impossibility_n for_o such_o imply_v a_o flat_a contradiction_n as_o that_o a_o part_n shall_v be_v equal_a to_o its_o whole_a or_o any_o thing_n be_v and_o not_o be_v at_o once_o a_o kind_n of_o certainty_n that_o be_v appliable_a even_o to_o very_o few_o demonstration_n we_o be_v not_o so_o sure_a that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o moon_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o sun_n or_o her_o eclipse_n by_o the_o interposition_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o these_o be_v reckon_v among_o demonstration_n in_o astronomy_n and_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n ever_o doubt_v of_o either_o methinks_v if_o god_n have_v furnish_v his_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a truth_n with_o evidence_n equal_a to_o this_o that_o the_o sun_n will_v shine_v to_o morrow_n or_o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o spring_n and_o harvest_n next_o year_n we_o be_v infinite_o oblige_v to_o bless_v his_o providence_n and_o just_o condemn_v if_o we_o refuse_v to_o believe_v the_o least_o of_o such_o truth_n as_o show_v less_o affection_n to_o save_v our_o soul_n than_o the_o dull_a plowman_n to_o sow_v their_o corn_n who_o certain_o have_v far_o less_o evidence_n for_o their_o harvest_n than_o catholic_n for_o their_o faith_n they_o insist_v not_o peevish_o upon_o every_o capricious_a objection_n nor_o exact_v a_o infallible_a security_n of_o a_o plentiful_a reap_v next_o summer_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o difficulty_n and_o contingency_n proceed_v cheerful_o in_o their_o painful_a husbandry_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v beg_v leave_n to_o ask_v the_o reader_n this_o serious_a question_n suppose_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o great_a assurance_n the_o church_n can_v give_v abstract_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o no_o high_a infallibility_n than_o the_o low_a degree_n we_o have_v mention_v will_v you_o venture_v your_o soul_n that_o a_o thousand_o dice_n be_v throw_v out_o of_o a_o box_n will_v come_v forth_o all_o six_o do_v you_o not_o see_v by_o this_o argument_n that_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o to_o one_o the_o catholic_n be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o consequent_o a_o thousand_o to_o one_o the_o protestant_n be_v in_o the_o wrong_n and_o this_o will_v necessary_o follow_v for_o in_o religion_n we_o can_v stand_v by_o and_o look_v on_o but_o we_o must_v absolute_o engage_v on_o one_o side_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o desperate_a shift_n of_o such_o protestant_n as_o think_v that_o because_o they_o see_v not_o a_o clear_a demonstration_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o the_o severe_a importance_n of_o that_o word_n they_o may_v therefore_o safe_o continue_v in_o their_o schism_n unless_o they_o be_v hardy_a enough_o to_o venture_v their_o soul_n in_o a_o way_n where_o it_o be_v at_o least_o a_o thousand_o to_o one_o they_o lose_v they_o so_o that_o though_o humane_a wit_n shall_v by_o captious_a objection_n seem_v to_o trouble_v the_o clearness_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o real_o impossible_a to_o be_v endanger_v yet_o be_v the_o motive_n of_o adherence_n to_o that_o communion_n so_o high_o credible_a even_o in_o a_o rational_a &_o natural_a consideration_n that_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a madness_n to_o prefer_v any_o other_o separate_v church_n or_o congregation_n which_o can_v pretend_v to_o the_o least_o credibility_n to_o support_v it_o 3._o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o premise_v since_o there_o be_v so_o many_o degree_n of_o truth_n or_o veracity_n and_o infallibility_n and_o yet_o the_o same_o word_n infallibility_n apply_v to_o they_o all_o it_o may_v be_v very_o reasonable_a that_o great_a caution_n shall_v be_v use_v in_o the_o application_n of_o it_o that_o be_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v express_v in_o what_o sense_n and_o degree_n the_o word_n be_v take_v before_o it_o be_v urge_v or_o dispute_v upon_o so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v advance_v to_o a_o more_o sublime_a degree_n than_o the_o matter_n require_v no_o wonder_n if_o there_o be_v misunderstanding_n between_o disputant_n and_o not_o only_o a_o prolong_n of_o disputation_n but_o also_o a_o impossibility_n of_o end_v they_o now_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o catholic_n controvertist_n for_o want_n of_o explication_n and_o clear_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o word_n infallibility_n that_o have_v give_v a_o advantage_n to_o protestant_n i_o examine_v not_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o protestant_n have_v take_v advantage_n from_o the_o ambiguousness_n of_o this_o word_n infallibility_n to_o embroile_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o to_o spin_v it_o out_o endless_o insomuch_o as_o there_o be_v not_o one_o author_n of_o they_o i_o ever_o meet_v with_o that_o treat_v of_o this_o controversy_n dispute_v to_o the_o point_n or_o so_o much_o as_o aim_n to_o combat_v against_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o against_o a_o image_n of_o infallibility_n create_v only_o by_o their_o own_o fancy_n 4._o for_o proof_n of_o this_o to_o omit_v the_o ordinary_a polemical_a write_n of_o protestant_n who_o waste_a paper_n and_o time_n only_o in_o combat_v particular_a unnecessary_a point_n controvert_v by_o catholic_n themselves_o i_o shall_v desire_v any_o ingenuous_a protestant_n to_o examine_v the_o proceed_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n and_o even_o my_o noble_a lord_n too_o in_o this_o little_a treatise_n and_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v what_o i_o say_v to_o be_v true_a yet_o certain_o no_o english_a writer_n ever_o profess_v to_o come_v close_o to_o the_o point_n than_o they_o 5._o first_o for_o mr._n chillingworth_n what_o a_o brand_n ●_o sh_a and_o flourish_v do_v he_o keep_v with_o his_o pen_n and_o what_o a_o great_a proportion_n of_o his_o book_n be_v spend_v in_o discourse_n by_o which_o he_o will_v pretend_v to_o enervate_v the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o approach_v towards_o it_o for_o suppose_v a_o pope_n be_v simoniacal_o elect_v or_o a_o bishop_n unlawful_o consecrate_v or_o a_o priest_n not_o baptize_v or_o that_o any_o of_o these_o have_v a_o perverse_a intention_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n will_v the_o church_n for_o all_o this_o fail_n in_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n or_o will_v all_o christian_n be_v turn_v out_o of_o their_o way_n to_o salvation_n do_v not_o or_o may_v not_o he_o easy_o have_v be_v inform_v that_o except_v in_o infant_n even_o baptism_n itself_o and_o much_o less_o any_o other_o sacrament_n unlawful_o and_o invalid_o administer_v
aequivocatio_fw-la nam_fw-la etiam_fw-la indigni_fw-la possunt_fw-la esse_fw-la fideles_fw-la verùm_fw-la hoc_fw-la dico_fw-la ad_fw-la majorem_fw-la cautelam_fw-la de_fw-fr reliquo_fw-la nemo_fw-la tenetúr_fw-la jurare_fw-la in_o verba_fw-la scholasticorum_fw-la sufficit_fw-la te_fw-la contra_fw-la communem_fw-la patrum_fw-la &_o ecclesiae_fw-la consensum_fw-la nunquàm_fw-la modum_fw-la istum_fw-la velle_fw-la interpretari_fw-la nec_fw-la determinate_a cavendum_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la ne_fw-la sub_fw-la terminis_fw-la tuis_fw-la oppositum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la transubstantiationi_fw-la inhaereat_fw-la animo_fw-la qu._n 4._o utrùm_fw-la ille_fw-la dici_fw-la possit_fw-la admittere_fw-la canonem_fw-la 2._o siss_n 21._o council_n trident._n de_fw-fr communione_fw-la sub_fw-la una_fw-la specie_fw-la qui_fw-la quamvis_fw-la ipse_fw-la nullas_fw-la videat_fw-la sufficientes_fw-la rationes_fw-la negandi_fw-la communione●_n utriusque_fw-la speciei_fw-la tamen_fw-la profitetur_fw-la se_fw-la piè_fw-la credere_fw-la fuisse_fw-la aliquas_fw-la quae_fw-la proculdubio_fw-la concilio_n videbantur_fw-la justae_fw-la &_o sufficientes_fw-la &_o canonicè_fw-la submittit_fw-la se_fw-la iste_fw-la alterationi_fw-la resp._n affirmatiuè_fw-fr inquirat_fw-la tamen_fw-la hic_fw-la christianus_n si_fw-la doctus_fw-la sir_n cord_n recto_fw-la motiva_fw-la concilii_fw-la in_o h●c_fw-la parte_fw-la &_o justi●sima_fw-la statim_fw-la inveniet_fw-la qu._n 5._o a_o fit_a de_fw-fr fide_fw-la licitum_fw-la esse_fw-la coërcere_fw-la &_o punire_fw-la vel_fw-la trade●e_fw-la puniendos_fw-la morte_fw-la exilio_fw-la vel_fw-la aliis_fw-la civilibus_fw-la poenis_fw-la haereticos_fw-la convictos_fw-la resp._n subjectum_fw-la quaestionis_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la materiam_fw-la fidei_fw-la ac_fw-la proinde_fw-la nihil_fw-la esse_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la in_o illâ_fw-la materia_fw-la veruntamen_fw-la ce●●●ssimum_fw-la esse_fw-la rebel_n à_fw-la side_n &_o ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la coërceri_fw-la &_o pun●●i_fw-la posse_fw-la poenis_fw-la nimirùm_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la censuris_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la à_fw-la superioribus_fw-la suis_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la et_fw-la poenis_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la incarceratione_fw-la exilio_fw-la &_o similibus_fw-la à_fw-la superioribus_fw-la suis_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la morte_fw-la verò_fw-la puniri_fw-la posse_fw-la haereticos_fw-la etiam_fw-la convictos_fw-la immò_fw-la relapso●_n vel_fw-la obstinatissimos_fw-la modò_fw-la à_fw-la seditionis_fw-la &_o rebellionis_fw-la in_o remp._n defuerit_fw-la omne_fw-la periculum_fw-la nunquam_fw-la fuir_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dogma_fw-la catholicum_fw-la quicquid_fw-la autem_fw-la sit_fw-la de_fw-la praxi_fw-la inquisitionis_fw-la jam_fw-la receptan_n catholici_fw-la plurimi_fw-la immò_fw-la &_o doctissimi_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la in_o gallia_n nostra_fw-la hoc_fw-la semper_fw-la improbarunt_fw-la sed_fw-la haec_fw-la quaestio_fw-la facti_fw-la est_fw-la seu_fw-la prudentiae_fw-la non_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la qu._n 6._o utrùm_fw-la &_o quatenùs_fw-la liceat_fw-la catholico_fw-la optare_fw-la &_o suadere_fw-la concessionem_fw-la utriusque_fw-la speciei_fw-la reformationem_fw-la abusuum_fw-la in_o reliquiis_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la indulgentiis_fw-la etc._n etc._n liturgiam_fw-la &_o preces_fw-la in_o linguâ_fw-la notâ_fw-la &_o intellectâ_fw-la etc._n etc._n sciticet_fw-la tanquam_fw-la media_fw-la admodùm_fw-la efficacia_fw-la ad_fw-la reünionem_fw-la eo●lesiarum_fw-la resp._n cum_fw-la subditorum_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la superiorum_fw-la suor●m_fw-la leges_fw-la ad_fw-la libitum_fw-la interpretari_fw-la immò_fw-la nec_fw-la sub_fw-la reformationis_fw-la specie_fw-la quamcunque_fw-la praxim_n authoritato_n stabilitam_fw-la corrigere_fw-la h●ec_fw-la enim_fw-la propria_fw-la seditionis_fw-la ratio_fw-la est_fw-la nemini_fw-la catholicorum_n licet_fw-la publicè_fw-la repraehendere_fw-la nec_fw-la verbo_fw-la nec_fw-la scripto_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la diseiplinam_fw-la canonicè_fw-la erectam_fw-la labefactatam_fw-la verò_fw-la restaurare_fw-la dummodò_fw-la prudenter_fw-la fiat_fw-la poterit_fw-la unusquisque_fw-la svo_fw-la modo_fw-la conari_fw-la cum_fw-la autem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la ac_fw-la pastorum_fw-la sit_fw-la quos_fw-la posuit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la regere_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la imposturas_fw-la omnes_fw-la authoritate_fw-la publicâ_fw-la prohibere_fw-la ac_fw-la tollere_fw-la his_fw-la omnium_fw-la est_fw-la sobriè_fw-la indicare_fw-la quos_fw-la manifestè_fw-la perceperint_fw-la religionis_fw-la abusus_fw-la tùm_fw-la in_o clero_fw-la tùm_fw-la in_o populo_fw-la verùm_fw-la nec_fw-la licet_fw-la nec_fw-la convenit_fw-la privato_fw-la cuicunque_fw-la suadere_fw-la mutationem_fw-la praxis_fw-la cujuscunque_fw-la quam_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sancitam_fw-la vel_fw-la in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la consuetudin●_n generali_fw-la &_o antiquâ_fw-la usurpatam_fw-la novimus_fw-la de_fw-fr communione_fw-la sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la ac_fw-la liturgiâ_fw-la seu_fw-la precibus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la in_o linguâ_fw-la vulgari_fw-la habendis_fw-la si_fw-la qua_fw-la spes_fw-la esset_fw-la illud_fw-la obtinendi_fw-la apud_fw-la haereticos_fw-la parùm_fw-la vale●et_fw-la de_fw-fr reliquiis_fw-la indulgentiis_fw-la imaginibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n multa_fw-la forsàn_fw-la modò_fw-la caurè_fw-la fieret_fw-la &_o monenda_fw-la &_o suadenda_fw-la forent_fw-la quicquid_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ut_fw-la vocas_fw-la reünionem_fw-la sperare_fw-la nequaquàm_fw-la fas_fw-la est_fw-la nisi_fw-la priùs_fw-la rebel_n in_fw-la sponsam_fw-la christi_fw-la submissis_fw-la cervicibus_fw-la potestati_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la ordinât●_n cordatum_fw-la jurent_fw-la obsequium_fw-la vale._n a_o table_n of_o the_o content_n of_o the_o several_a chapter_n sect._n 1_o cap._n 1._o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o author_n depart_v out_o of_o england_n bloody_a commotion_n of_o calvinist_n there_o the_o horribleness_n and_o strangeness_n of_o they_o p._n 1._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 2._o sacrilege_n and_o perjury_n acknowledge_v even_o by_o heathen_n to_o be_v principal_a cause_n of_o public_a calamity_n p._n 4._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 3._o england_n prodigious_o guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n since_o the_o schism_n visible_a judgement_n have_v continual_o pursue_v this_o crime_n there_o p._n 7._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 4._o perjury_n how_o frequent_o and_o how_o heinous_o commit_v in_o england_n since_o the_o schism_n p._n 12._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 5._o the_o sanguinary_a law_n and_o cruel_a execution_n of_o they_o upon_o catholic_n priest_n in_o england_n p._n 16._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 6._o the_o author_n sadness_n for_o the_o sin_n and_o misery_n of_o his_o country_n what_o remedy_n and_o lenitive_n he_o find_v for_o this_o sorrow_n p._n 18._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 7._o a_o scruple_n suggest_v to_o my_o mind_n viz._n to_o the_o communion_n of_o what_o church_n i_o shall_v adhere_v upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n shall_v fail_v p._n 20._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 8._o a_o reflection_n upon_o several_a sect_n and_o first_o upon_o the_o socinian_o p._n 22._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 9_o a_o reflection_n upon_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n church_n their_o first_o disadvantage_n in_o comparison_n with_o the_o english_a church_n p._n 27._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 10._o apparent_a want_n yea_o renounce_v of_o a_o lawful_a succession_n of_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n among_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n p._n 29._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 11._o consent_v of_o father_n against_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n p._n 34._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 12._o seditious_a doctrine_n universal_o teach_v by_o calvinist_n etc._n etc._n p._n 37._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 13._o protestant_n recriminate_n catholic_n for_o rebellion_n answer_v p._n 44._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 14._o a_o four_o scandal_n among_o calvinist_n viz._n their_o aversion_n from_o unity_n p._n 47._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 15._o the_o scandalous_a personal_a quality_n of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n p_o 51._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 16._o the_o author_n unquietness_n not_o be_v able_a to_o communicate_v with_o calvinist_n etc._n etc._n reflection_n upon_o the_o several_a eastern_a church_n p_o 57_o sect._n 1_o cap._n 17._o necessity_n of_o the_o author_n examine_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n several_a advantage_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o that_o church_n p_o 59_o sect._n 1_o cap._n 18._o preparation_n to_o the_o examine_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n p_o 66._o sect._n 1_o cap._n 19_o what_o prejudice_n the_o author_n receive_v by_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n express_v in_o school_n language_n p_o 70._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 1._o the_o first_o conclusion_n concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n testimony_n of_o father_n acknowledge_v doctrine_n traditionary_a as_o well_o as_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n p_o 77._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 2._o the_o roman_a church_n agree_v with_o father_n in_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o faith_n all_o sect_n of_o protestant_n disagree_v with_o the_o father_n p_o 82._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 3._o english_a protestant_n unwilling_a to_o justify_v this_o position_n and_o why_o mr._n chillingworth_n late_a book_n against_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o character_n give_v of_o it.p._n 85._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 4._o inconvenience_n follow_v protestant_n position_n of_o only_a scripture_n father_n refuse_v to_o dispute_v with_o heretic_n from_o only_a scripture_n p_o 90._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 5._o weakness_n of_o protestant_n proof_n for_o only_a scripture_n text_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o catholic_n vain_o elude_v by_o protestant_n p_o 97._o sect._n 2._o cap._n 6._o two_o principal_a text_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o protestant_n to_o prove_v its_o sufficiency_n and_o against_o tradition_n answer_v p_o 101_o sect._n 2._o cap._n 7._o reason_n and_o text_n produce_v by_o mr._n chillingworth_n to_o prove_v only_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n p_o